summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/48626.txt
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
Diffstat (limited to '48626.txt')
-rw-r--r--48626.txt11550
1 files changed, 0 insertions, 11550 deletions
diff --git a/48626.txt b/48626.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 37f75a1..0000000
--- a/48626.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11550 +0,0 @@
- MOLLIE'S SUBSTITUTE HUSBAND
-
-
-
-
-This ebook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this ebook or online at
-http://www.gutenberg.org/license. If you are not located in the United
-States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you are
-located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: Mollie's Substitute Husband
-Author: Max McConn
-Release Date: April 01, 2015 [EBook #48626]
-Language: English
-Character set encoding: US-ASCII
-
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MOLLIE'S SUBSTITUTE HUSBAND
-***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Al Haines.
-
-
-
-
-
- [Transcriber's note: The frontispiece was missing from
- the source book]
-
-
-
-
- *MOLLIE'S SUBSTITUTE
- HUSBAND*
-
-
- BY
-
- MAX McCONN
-
-
-
- _WITH FRONTISPIECE BY_
- EDWARD C. CASWELL
-
-
-
- THE RYERSON PRESS
- TORONTO
- 1920
-
-
-
-
- COPYRIGHT, 1920
- BY DODD, MEAD AND COMPANY, INC.
-
- PRINTED IN U. S. A.
-
-
-
-
- *CONTENTS*
-
-CHAPTER
-
-I "The Professor" on a Spree
-II The Prettiest Girl
-III Friendly Strangers
-IV An Unscrupulous Reformer
-V Alicia and the Motives of Men
-VI Stage-Setting
-VII Boy and Girl
-VIII Passages with Mayor Black
-IX Aunt Mary
-X A Senator Missing
-XI Confessions of Waiter No. 73
-XII Grapefruit and Telegrams
-XIII A Change of Management
-XIV Holding the Fort
-XV Council of War
-XVI The Senatorial Dinner
-XVII A Devious Journey
-XVIII Jennie
-XIX A New Antagonist
-XX An Eventful Supper Party
-XXI Flash Lights
-XXII Virtue Triumphant
-XXIII Return
-XXIV The Reform League
-XXV Second Council of War
-XXVI The Business of Being an Impostor
-XXVII The Code Telegram
-XXVIII Simpson as Detective
-XXIX The Final Dilemma
-XXX Mollie June
-
-
-
-
- *MOLLIE'S SUBSTITUTE HUSBAND*
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER I*
-
- *"THE PROFESSOR" ON A SPREE*
-
-
-John Merriam, Principal of the High School at Riceville,
-Illinois--"Professor" Merriam, as he was universally called by the
-citizens of Riceville--was wickedly, carnally, gloriously happy. He was
-having an unwonted spree.
-
-I fear the reader will be shocked. The principal of a high school, he
-will say, has no right to a spree, even an occasional one. The
-"Professor" has girl students in his classes--mostly girls, indeed, and
-usually the prettiest ones in town--and women teachers under his
-supervision. Every seventh day he teaches a young people's class in a
-Sunday School. He makes addresses at meetings of the Y.P.S.C.E., the
-Y.M.C.A., and other alphabetically designated societies that make for
-righteousness and decorum. He should at all times and in all places be
-a model, an exemplar, to the budding young men and women of the
-community in general and his school in particular.
-
-In this reasoning the reader is in strict accord with what the sentiment
-of all Riceville would have been if it had known--if it could have
-known.
-
-Nevertheless, it is the regrettable and shocking fact that John Merriam
-was sitting on that pleasant April evening in the Peacock Cabaret of the
-Hotel De Soto in the wicked city of Chicago. He was attired in evening
-clothes, a fact which, in itself would have seemed both odd and
-reprehensible to Riceville, and he was alone at a tiny table with a
-yellow-silk-shaded lamp. He had just been guided to that table, and
-pending the arrival of a waiter, he was gazing eagerly, boyishly about
-him at such delights as the somewhat garish Peacock Cabaret displayed.
-
-For John Merriam, though a "professor," was young. He was only
-twenty-eight. He was tall and blond and athletic, as young men who grow
-up on farms in the Middle West and then go to college have a way of
-being. And after his season of strenuous and highly virtuous labours at
-Riceville he was really hungry, keen, for something--well, just a little
-less virtuous.
-
-A distinguished looking gentleman in a dinner jacket, conspicuously
-labeled with a number, somewhat haughtily and negligently approached,
-bearing a menu card.
-
-About three paces away this gentleman, having glanced at young Merriam,
-fairly stopped and stared at him. An odd expression showed upon his
-face--an expression, one would almost have said, of intense animosity.
-Then, as he still stared, one might have decided that his look betokened
-perplexity. He winked his eyes several times and once more scrutinised
-his waiting guest. At length--perhaps ten seconds had passed--his face
-slowly, wonderingly cleared, his usual air of vacant indifference
-returned, and he advanced and placed the menu card in Merriam's hands.
-The latter, still drinking in the sights and sounds of his unaccustomed
-environment, had noticed nothing.
-
-Now it is always prudent to note a waiter's number when he first
-presents himself, for in case he should decide to begin his summer
-vacation immediately after taking your order you may need to mention his
-number to the head waiter. In this case the number was 73.
-
-The hauteur and negligence displayed were partly habitual--professional,
-so to speak--but were intensified perhaps by the reaction from the
-emotion, whatever it was, which he had apparently just
-experienced--perhaps also by the look of alert and genuine pleasure on
-Merriam's face. Such a look did not wholly commend itself or him to a
-sophisticated metropolitan taste. What right had a patron of the
-Peacock Cabaret to look really pleased? It was hardly decent--and
-argued a small tip.
-
-Inwardly Merriam, now aware of the waiter's presence, reacted acutely to
-this clearly perceptible disdain. Which shows how young and how rural
-he was. We maturer, urban folk are never, of course, in the least
-nonplused by those contemptuous, blase silences of waiters who possess
-the bearing and manner of a governor or a capitalist.
-
-But John Merriam had been excellent in amateur dramatics at college, and
-he now roused himself to a magnificent histrionic effort in the role of
-"man of the world."
-
-He pushed the menu card aside without looking at it.
-
-"A clam cocktail, please, and a stein of beer," he murmured, low enough
-to force the distinguished one to unbend slightly in order to catch the
-words.
-
-"Yes, sir," said Waiter No. 73, with a tentative suggestion of respect
-in his tone. A customer who did not bother to look at the menu might be
-worth while after all.
-
-"And then what?"
-
-"I'll see how I feel then," said Merriam with a half yawn.
-
-"Yes, sir," said Waiter No. 73, almost courteously, and departed at a
-pace slightly quickened over that of his approach, as a man strolling at
-complete leisure will instinctively increase the tempo of his step if he
-chances to recall a definite engagement on the day after to-morrow.
-
-Merriam grinned delightedly. He had put it across--his little piece of
-acting. He had measurably imposed his role on his audience of one; at
-least he had shaken him.
-
-And then--I shudder when I recall the views on nicotine of the Board of
-Education at Riceville--he drew from his pocket a package of cigarettes,
-and took a match from the table, and lit a cigarette, and sent a volume
-of smoke out through his nostrils--proving, alas, that it was not his
-first indulgence,--and, with a sigh that might almost be described as
-ecstatic, turned his attention again to the scene about him.
-
-That scene was piquant to him--after the ugly dining room of his
-boarding house at Riceville and the barren assembly hall of the High
-School--to a degree almost incredible to persons more habituated to the
-Peacock Cabaret and similar resorts. Not being quite so fresh from
-Riceville, nor yet the advertising manager of the Hotel De Soto, I
-cannot, I fear, paint the prospect as Merriam saw it. I shall not be
-able to conceal some mental reservations as to its charms. The purple
-peacocks upon the walls and ceiling, from which the restaurant took its
-name, were certainly a trifle over-gorgeous, just as the music which the
-orchestra intermittently dispensed was too much syncopated. Again, the
-scores of small tables, each with its silk-shaded lamp, its slim glass
-vase for a single rosebud, its water bottle bearing the arms of the
-Chevalier De Soto, and its ash receptacle--all alike as shoe boxes in a
-shoe shop are alike,--might to a tired fancy suggest a certain monotony
-of pleasure, a too-much-standardised, ready-made brand of bliss. The
-small, skimped stage, with its undeniably banal curtain, and the crowded
-dancing floor did not really promise unlimited delights. Some
-perception of all this was apparent in the faces and bearing of many of
-the white-shirt-fronted men who sat at the scores of tables and of the
-women who were with them, however bird-of-paradise-like the raiment of
-the latter might be. Not a few indeed displayed an air of languor and
-ennui that might have won approval even from Waiter No. 73.
-
-But in speaking thus of the Peacock Cabaret I am stepping outside my
-story, violating unity of point of view--in short, committing a heinous
-literary crime. For to Merriam at that moment the screaming purple
-peacocks, the regiments of rosebuds, the musical comedy melodies, the
-gay attire and bare shoulders of the women, and even the tired look of
-his fellow-diners, which he interpreted as sophistication rather than
-simple boredom, were thrillingly symbolical of all the delights which
-the great world held and which were absent from Riceville. And when
-Waiter No. 73 leisurely returned, to find him outwardly almost too near
-asleep to keep his cigarette going, and deposited his clam cocktail and
-the wicked stein before him, and at the same moment the orchestra became
-more noisy than ever, and all the lights except those upon the tables
-went out, and the stage curtain rose upon a short-skirted chorus, he was
-really in a sort of Omar Khayyam paradise. It was lucky that Waiter No.
-73 had again departed to those unknown regions where waiters spend the
-bulk of their time, for Merriam could not have concealed the zest with
-which he alternately ate and drank and surveyed the moderately comely
-demoiselles upon the little stage.
-
-Having finished his cocktail and drunk some of his beer and seen the
-curtain descend on the first "act" of the cabaret's dramatic
-entertainment, Merriam lit another cigarette, shifted his chair, and
-settled himself to await the probable future return of his servitor.
-His thoughts dwelt contentedly on the evening before him. For after his
-meal he would have a stroll with a cigar in the spring twilight (it was
-barely six-thirty then) through the noisy, brightly lighted streets of
-the Loop, which never failed to thrill him with a sense of a somehow
-wicked vastness, power, and riches in the great city of which they were
-the center. And then he was going to the "Follies." He fingered the
-small envelope in his pocket which held his ticket. And after the show
-he would have a supper in another cabaret.
-
-Beyond that he did not let his fancy wander. For after that there was
-nothing for it but to catch the 2:00 A.M. train on the Illinois Central
-that would carry him back to Riceville for the remaining six weeks of
-the school year. He had come up to Chicago on this spring day--a
-Tuesday it was--to attend a convention of high-school principals and to
-engage a couple of new teachers for the next year, to replace two that
-were to be married in June. And he had faithfully done these things.
-And now he was giving himself just this one evening of amusement--two
-cabaret meals and a "show," sauced, so to speak, with a little tobacco
-and beer and the wearing of his evening clothes. Surely whatever
-Riceville might have thought, he will not seem to most of us very
-derelict from the austere ideals of his profession.
-
-The only real point against him--most of us might argue--lies in the
-fact that when, you touch even the outermost fringes of the night life
-of a city, you are never quite certain what may come to you. For there
-are things happening all about you, under the conventional, monotonous
-surface--things amusing and things terrible--men and women playing with
-the fire of every known human passion,--and if the finger of some
-adventure reaches out for you you may not be able to resist its lure,
-perhaps even to escape its clutch.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER II*
-
- *THE PRETTIEST GIRL*
-
-
-I have said that Merriam had shifted his chair a little as he lit his
-second cigarette. A moment later he was looking very hard at a certain
-pretty woman at a table half way across the room. His heart stopped.
-At least that is the phrase a novelist seems to be required to use to
-indicate the sudden pulse of amazement and pleasure and alarm which he
-certainly felt.
-
-The young woman at whom he was staring had a name which is very
-important for this story and which I shall presently tell you, but in
-John Merriam's mind her name was "the prettiest girl," and her other
-name, which he seldom dared whisper to his heart, was "Mollie June."
-She was from Riceville--hence the alarm with which his pleasure was
-mixed,--and during his first four months of teaching, three years
-before, she had been in his senior class in the High School--the
-"prettiest girl" in the class and in the school and in the town--and in
-the State and the United States and the world, if you had asked John
-Merriam. Advanced algebra with Mollie June in the class had been the
-most golden of sciences--pleasure squared, delight cubed, and bliss to
-the _n_th power. I am not myself absolutely convinced of Mollie June's
-proficiency in solving quadratic equations, yet the official records of
-the Riceville High School show that she received the highest mark in the
-class.
-
-But she was the daughter of James P. Partridge, the owner of all
-Riceville; that is to say, of the coal mines outside the town, of the
-grain elevator, of the street car and electric light company, and of the
-First National Bank. Who was John Merriam, the son of a poor farmer in
-a southern county, who had worked his way through college and come out
-with nothing but a B.S. degree, a football reputation that was quite
-unnegotiable, and three hundred dollars of fraternity debts--an enormous
-sum,--to mix anything warmer or livelier than a^2-b^2 in his thoughts of
-a class to which Mollie June Partridge deigned to belong? Even if
-Mollie June herself did come up to his desk in the assembly room two or
-three times a week for help in her algebra and spend most of the time
-asking him about college instead, and join his Young People's Class,
-which she had previously refused to attend, and allow him to "see her
-home" from church sociables, and compel that docile magnate, John P.
-Partridge, her father, to invite the new "professor" to dinner twice
-during the half year? As well almost might a humble tutor in the castle
-of a feudal lord have raised his eyes to the baron's daughter.
-
-Almost, but not quite. After all this is a free republic. Even a poor
-pedagogue is a citizen with a vote and a potential candidate for the
-presidency--which at least two poor pedagogues have attained. So John
-Merriam permitted himself to be very happy during those four months and
-was not in the least hopeless. Only he saw that he must bide his time.
-
-But early in January Mollie June left school, and in a few days it came
-out that she had left to be married--married to Senator Norman!
-
-Senator Norman was the famous "boy senator" from Illinois--at the time
-of his election the youngest man who had ever sat in the upper house of
-Congress. The ruddiness of his cheeks, the abundance of his wavy blond
-hair, and the athletic jauntiness of his carriage won votes whenever he
-stumped the State. They went far to counteract malicious insinuations
-as to the means by which he was rolling up a fortune and his solidity
-with "interests" which the proletariat viewed with suspicion.
-
-And now, having been a widower for eighteen months--his first wife was
-older than he and had brought him money,--he had stayed for a week-end
-during the Christmas holidays with James P. Partridge, who was a cousin
-of the Senator's first wife and his political lieutenant for a certain
-group of counties, and had seen Mollie June and wanted her and asked for
-her and got her, as George Norman always asked for and got whatever he
-wanted.
-
-All this was, of course, in John Merriam's mind as he gazed across a
-dozen tables in the Peacock Cabaret at the unchanged profile of the
-prettiest girl--that is to say, Mrs. Senator Norman. And with it came
-an acute revival of the desolation of that January and February at
-Riceville, when he had perceived with the Hebrew sage that "in much
-learning"--or in little, for that matter--"is much weariness," and that
-algebra should have been buried with the medieval Arabians who invented
-it--when even the State championship in basket ball, won by the
-Riceville Five under his coaching, was only a trouble and a bore.
-
-There is no doubt he stared rudely. At least it would have been rudely
-if his eyes had held the look which eyes that stare at pretty women
-commonly hold. But such a look as stood in Merriam's eyes can hardly be
-rude, however intent and prolonged it may be.
-
-He was merely entranced in the literal sense of that word. Her girlish
-white shoulders--he had never seen her shoulders before--in Riceville
-women no more have shoulders than they have legs--the soft brown hair
-over her ears--even the mode of the day, which called for close net
-effects and tight knobs, could not conceal its fine softness--the colour
-in her cheeks, which unquestionably shamed all the neighbouring
-rosebuds--the quite inexplicable deliciousness of those particular small
-curves described by the lines of her nose and chin and throat as he saw
-them in half profile--were more than he could draw his eyes away from
-for an unconscionable number of seconds. Of her charmingly simple and
-unquestionably very expensive frock as a separate fact, and of the thin,
-pale, and elderly, but gorgeously arrayed woman who was her companion,
-he had no clear perception, but undoubtedly they both contributed, along
-with the lights and colours and music of the Peacock Cabaret, to the
-deplorable confusion of his mind.
-
-Out of that confusion there presently arose certain clear images and
-tones and words, which made up his memory of the last time he had seen
-and spoken with the present Mrs. Senator Norman.
-
-It was at and after a miscellaneous kind of young people's entertainment
-which occurred at the Methodist Church on the evening of that bitter day
-on which the news of her engagement to Senator Norman had run like a
-prairie fire through the streets and homes of Riceville, fiercely
-incinerating all other topics of conversation, and consuming also the
-joy in life, the ambition, the very youth, it seemed to him, of John
-Merriam. He would not have gone to that entertainment if he could have
-escaped. But there were to be charades, and he had arranged and coached
-most of them and was to be in several. He "simply had to go," as
-Ricevillians might have said.
-
-She was there with her mother. When had she ever come just with her
-mother, that is to say, without a male escort, before? That fact alone
-was symbolical of the closing of the gates of matrimony upon her.
-Naturally, in his pain he followed his primitive and childish instincts
-and avoided her.
-
-But he was aware--he was almost sure--of her eyes continually following
-him throughout the evening, and during "refreshments" she deliberately
-came up to him and said that her mother was obliged to leave early, and
-would he see her home? Well, of course, if she asked him, he had to. I
-am afraid that the tone if not the words of his reply said as much, and
-Mollie June had turned away with quick tears in her eyes. Yet I
-question whether she was really hurt by his rudeness. For why should he
-be rude to-night when he had never been so before unless he--to use the
-most expressive of Americanisms--"cared"?
-
-For the rest of the evening, as a result of those tears, which he had
-seen, it was his eyes that followed her, while hers avoided him. But he
-did not speak with her again until "seeing-home" time arrived.
-
-Mollie June lingered till the very end of everything. Perhaps the little
-girl in her--for she was barely eighteen--clung to this last shred of
-the familiar, homely social life of her girlhood before she should be
-plunged into the frightful brilliance of real "society" in terrific
-places known as Chicago and Washington--as a senator's wife!
-
-But at last they were walking together towards her home.
-
-"Take my arm, please," said Mollie June.
-
-The boys in Riceville always take the girls' arms at night, though never
-in the daytime. John ought to have taken her arm before. He took it.
-
-"Have you heard that I am going to be married?" asked Mollie June--as if
-she did not know that everybody in the county knew it by that time.
-
-"Yes," said John, his tone as succinct as his monosyllable.
-
-But girls learn early to deal with the conversational difficulties and
-recalcitrances of males under stress of emotion.
-
-"It means leaving school and Riceville and--everything," said Mollie
-June.
-
-John could not fail to catch the note of pitifulness in her sentence.
-If the prospective marriage had been with any one less dazzling than
-George Norman, he might have reacted more properly. As it was, he
-replied with a stilted impersonality which might have been caught from
-the bright stars shining through the bare branches under which they
-walked.
-
-"You will have a very rich and brilliant life," he said.
-
-"I suppose so," said Mollie June.
-
-They walked on, he still obediently clutching her arm, in silence;
-conversation not accompaniable with laughter is so difficult an art for
-youth.
-
-Presently Mollie June tried again.
-
-"Aren't you sorry I'm leaving the school--Mr. Merriam?"
-
-"I'm very sorry indeed," responded "Professor" Merriam. "You ought to
-have stayed to graduate."
-
-"I don't care about graduating," said Mollie June.
-
-Again their footsteps echoed in the cold January silence.
-
-Then Mollie June made a third attempt:
-
-"You look ever so much like Mr. Norman."
-
-"I know it," said Merriam. "We're related."
-
-"Oh, _are you_?"
-
-"On my mother's side. We're second cousins. But the two branches of the
-family have nothing to do with each other now."
-
-"He has the same hair and the same shape of head and the same way of
-sitting and moving," Mollie June declared with enthusiasm, "and almost
-the same eyes and voice. Only his are----"
-
-"Older!" said John Merriam rudely.
-
-"Yes," said Mollie June.
-
-Distances are not great in Riceville. For this reason the ceremony of
-"seeing home" is usually termed by a circuitous route, sometimes
-involving the entire circumference of the "nice" part of the town. But
-on this occasion John and Mollie June had gone directly, as though their
-object had been to arrive. They reached her home--a matter of two
-blocks from the church-before another word had been said.
-
-There Mollie June carefully extricated her arm from his mechanical grasp
-and confronted him.
-
-He looked at her face, peeping out of the fur collar of her coat in the
-starlight, and for one instant into her eyes.
-
-She was saying: "I am very grateful to you, Merriam, for all the help
-you have given me--in--algebra."
-
-He ought to have kissed her. She wanted him to. He half divined as
-much--afterwards.
-
-But the awkward, callow, Anglo-Saxon, rural, pedagogical cub in him
-replied, "I am glad if I have been able to help you in anything."
-
-That, I judge, was too much for Mollie June. She held out her little
-gloved hand.
-
-"Good-bye, Mr. Merriam!"
-
-He took her hand. And now appears the advantage of a college education,
-including amateur dramatics and courses in English poetry and romantic
-fiction. He did what no other swain in Riceville could have done. He
-raised her hand to his lips and kissed it! At least he kissed the glove
-which tightly enclosed the hand.
-
-"Good-bye, Mollie June!" he said, using that name for the first time.
-
-Then he dropped her hand, somewhat suddenly, I fear, turned abruptly,
-and walked rapidly away.
-
-As to what Mollie June said or thought or felt, how should I know?
-There was nothing for her to do but to go into the house, and that is
-what she did.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER III*
-
- *FRIENDLY STRANGERS*
-
-
-John Merriam raised his eyes from the table-cloth on which they had
-rested while these images from the distant past--two and one-half years
-ago--moved across the screen of his memory. To his now mature
-perceptions the stupidity and gaucherie of his own part in that
-scene--save for the redeeming kissing of the glove--were clearly
-apparent, and were for the moment almost as painful to him as the fact
-that Mollie June was another man's wife.
-
-He glanced around, avoiding only the table at which Mrs. Senator Norman
-sat. The glory was gone from the Peacock Cabaret. The garishness of
-the peacocks, the tin-panniness of the music, the futility of beer and
-cigarettes and evening clothes, were desolatingly revealed to him. He
-put his cigarette aside, to smoke itself up unregarded on the ash tray.
-
-It had been his duty to "forget," and it is neither more nor less than
-justice to say that after a fashion he had succeeded in doing so. His
-winter and spring, three years ago, had been miserable; but he had
-undeniably enjoyed his summer vacation, and had found interest in his
-work again in the fall. To be sure, the edge was gone from his ambition.
-He had stuck ploddingly at teaching, too indifferent to try to better
-himself. Still he had not been actively unhappy. But now----
-
-He was diverted by the return of Waiter No. 73. No need of play-acting
-now to conceal any unsophisticated delight in his surroundings. But he
-must pull himself together. He must not exhibit to the world, as
-incarnated in Waiter No. 73, a depression as boyish as his previous
-pleasure. He must still be the stoical, tranquil man of the world, who
-knows women and tears them from his heart when need be. It was the same
-role--with a difference!
-
-"What next, sir?"
-
-Merriam glanced hastily at the menu card and ordered a steak with French
-fried potatoes and a lettuce-and-tomato salad. He was not up to an
-attack on any unfamiliar viands.
-
-As he gave his order he was aware of a party of three persons, seated a
-little to his left--the opposite direction from the fateful spot
-inhabited by Mollie June,--who seemed to be taking particular note of
-him. And as he lit another cigarette after the waiter had left him he
-noticed them again. Unquestionably they were furtively regarding him.
-Now and then they exchanged remarks of which he was sure he was the
-subject.
-
-The three persons included a square-jawed man of about forty-five, a
-pale, benevolent-looking priest and a very beautiful woman. The woman
-had not only shoulders and arms but also a great deal of bosom and back,
-all dazzlingly, powderedly fair and ideally plump. She had black hair
-and eyes--brilliantly, even aggressively, black. Her gown was a
-lavender silk net with spangles. Her age--well, she was certainly older
-than Mollie June and certainly within, safely within, "the age at which
-women cease to be interesting to men," whatever that age may be.
-
-Our youthful man of the world was a little embarrassed at first by the
-scrutiny of this gorgeous trio. He glanced quickly down at his own
-attire, as a girl might have done. But there could be nothing wrong
-with his evening clothes. (A man is so safe in that respect.) They
-were only five years old, having been acquired, in a heroic burst of
-extravagance, during his senior year in college. He wanted to put his
-hand up to his white bow to make sure it was not askew, but restrained
-himself.
-
-Presently Merriam began to enjoy the attention he was receiving. If one
-must play a part, it is pleasant to have an audience. It helped him to
-keep his eyes off Mollie June. He began to give attention to the
-smoking of his cigarette. He handled it with nonchalant grace. He
-exhaled smoke through his nostrils. He recalled an envied
-accomplishment of his college days and carefully blew a couple of
-tolerably perfect smoke rings. And he wished that Mollie June would
-turn and see him in his evening clothes.
-
-Presently the clerical gentleman, after an earnest colloquy with the
-square-jawed one, rose and came across to Merriam's table, while the
-other two now openly watched.
-
-The priest rested two white hands on the edge of the table and bent over
-him with a friendly smile.
-
-"Will you pardon a frank question from a stranger?" he asked.
-
-"I guess a question won't hurt me," said Merriam.
-
-At this simple reply the cleric straightened up quickly as if startled
-and looked at Merriam closely and curiously. Then he said:
-
-"Are you by any chance related to Senator Norman?"
-
-"Yes, I am," said Merriam.
-
-"May I ask what the relationship is?"
-
-Merriam told him.
-
-"Thank you," said the priest. "The resemblance is really remarkable.
-And we saw you looking at Mrs. Norman. Do you know her?"
-
-"Yes. I knew her before--before she--was married."
-
-"I see. Thank you so much."
-
-The inquisitive priest returned to his friends, who appeared to listen
-intently to his report.
-
-At the same time Waiter No. 73 arrived with Merriam's steak and salad.
-
-He ate self-consciously, feeling himself still under observation from
-the other table. But when he was half way through his salad his
-attention was effectually distracted from those watchers. For Mollie
-June and her companion had risen to go.
-
-Merriam put down his fork and looked at her. She was really beautiful to
-any eyes--so fresh and young and alive amid the tawdry ennui of her
-surroundings, a human girl among the labouring ghosts of a _danse
-macabre_. To Merriam she was--what you will--radiant, divine. He
-wished he had not lost a moment from looking at her since he first saw
-her.
-
-A waiter had brought a fur cloak and now held it for her. As she
-adjusted it about her shoulders she glanced around and saw Merriam.
-
-For a moment she looked straight at him. Merriam would have sworn that
-her colour heightened ever so little and then paled. She smiled a
-mechanical little smile, bowed slightly, spoke to her companion, and
-threaded her way quickly among tables to an exit.
-
-"I beg your pardon!"
-
-Merriam started and looked up--to find the black-eyed, white-bosomed
-woman from the other table standing beside him. He was conscious of a
-faint fragrance, which a more sophisticated person would have recognised
-as that of an extremely expensive perfume, widely advertised under the
-name of a famous opera singer.
-
-He rose mechanically, dropping his napkin.
-
-"No, no," she smiled. "Won't you sit down--and let me sit down a
-moment, too?"
-
-She took the chair opposite him.
-
-"My name is Alicia Wayward," she said. There was a kind of deliberate
-sweetness in her tone.
-
-John Merriam got back somehow into his chair and looked at her, but did
-not reply. His eyes saw the face of Mollie June, peeping out of her
-furs, as on that last night at Riceville, her changing colour, her
-mechanical smile, and the hurrying away without giving him a chance to
-go to her for a single word.
-
-"Won't you tell me your name?" said Alicia, with the barest suggestion
-in her voice of sharpness in the midst of sweet.
-
-"John Merriam."
-
-"And you are a second cousin of Senator Norman?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"I am an old friend of Senator Norman's," said Alicia. "We are all
-friends of his." She nodded towards the other table. "And we should
-very much like to have a little private talk with you about a very
-important matter.--How do you do, Simpson?"
-
-Merriam looked up again. Waiter No. 73 was standing over them. But he
-was a transformed being. The ramrod had somehow been extracted from his
-spine, and his stern features were transfigured in an expression of
-happy and ingratiating servility.
-
-"Very well, Miss Alicia," he said.
-
-"Simpson used to be my father's butler," explained Miss Wayward. "We've
-never had so a butler since."
-
-"Thank you, Miss Alicia," said Simpson fervently.
-
-"Send me the head waiter," said Miss Wayward.
-
-"Yes, Miss Alicia," and Simpson departed almost with alacrity.
-
-"You are just ready for your dessert, I see," said Alicia. "I am going
-to ask the head waiter to change us both to one of the private rooms and
-give us Simpson to wait on us. Then I can present you to my friends,
-and we can have the private talk I spoke of. You don't mind, do you?"
-
-Merriam thought of the "Follies." But the idea of the "Follies" bored
-him after seeing Mollie June. And one cannot refuse a lady. He
-recaptured some fraction of his manners.
-
-"I shall be pleased," he said.
-
-"Thank you," said Alicia, with augmented sweetness.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER IV*
-
- *AN UNSCRUPULOUS REFORMER*
-
-
-The head waiter arrived. Could they be removed to a private
-dining-room? Most certainly they could. Yes, Simpson should serve
-them. Obviously anything that Miss Alicia Wayward desired could be done,
-must be done, and it was done.
-
-They ordered ices and _cafe noir_.
-
-"And a liqueur?" suggested Alicia.
-
-Merriam assented.
-
-"What should you prefer?"
-
-Now Merriam knew the name of just one liqueur. He made prompt use of
-that solitary scrap of information.
-
-"Benedictine, perhaps," he suggested, as who should say, "Out of all the
-world's vintages my mature choice among liqueurs is Benedictine."
-
-"Good," smiled Alicia. (I am afraid she was not effectually deceived.)
-
-Merriam was introduced first to Father Murray.
-
-"He isn't a real Father," said Alicia. "He's not a Romanist. Only a
-paltry Anglican. But he's so very, very High Church that a layman can
-hardly tell the difference."
-
-Father Murray was deprecatory but unruffled. A Christian priest must
-forgive all things.
-
-"This is Mr. Philip Rockwell of the Reform League," said Alicia. "His
-fame has doubtless reached you. 'One-Thing-at-a-Time Rockwell.'"
-
-His fame had not reached Merriam, but the latter bowed and shook hands
-as though it had, instinctively meeting the stare in the other man's
-eyes with an unblinking steadiness of his own.
-
-After the introductions Merriam glanced about him with perhaps
-insufficiently concealed curiosity. He had never been in a private
-dining-room before, and this adventure was beginning to interest him. It
-was better than spending his evening--his one evening--in sad thoughts
-of Mollie June.
-
-The room was just large enough to afford comfortable space for a table
-for four persons, with a small sideboard to serve from. It was really
-rather pretty. Subdued purple hangings at the door and windows and a
-frieze of small peacocks above the plate rail indicated its affiliation,
-so to speak, with the Peacock Cabaret. There were attractive French
-prints in garland frames on the walls. The table was charmingly laid,
-with a bowl of yellow roses in the center, and the ices were already
-served. On the sideboard the coffee in a silver pot was bubbling over
-an alcohol flame, and there was a long bottle which Merriam correctly
-interpreted as the container of his choice among liqueurs.
-
-"This is much cosier, isn't it?" said Alicia.
-
-She took the head of the table.
-
-"Father Murray shall sit opposite me," she said, "to see that I behave.
-You, Mr. Merriman, shall sit on my right, as the guest of honour. That
-leaves this place for you, Philip. Reformers must be content with what
-they can get."
-
-Merriam mustered the gallantry to hold Alicia's chair for her, and was
-warmed by the approving smile with which she thanked him. He had not
-especially liked Alicia at first, but she grew upon him.
-
-They consumed ices, and Alicia conversed, in the sprightly fashion she
-affected, with Merriam. The other two men hardly participated at all.
-
-In the course of that conversation Alicia artlessly, tactfully, but
-efficiently pumped Merriam. By the time Simpson was pouring the
-sweet-scented wine into thimble-like glasses she--and her
-companions--were in possession of all the substantial facts of his brief
-biography and had guessed the secret of his heart. They knew of his
-boyhood on the farm, of his father's death, and his mother's a few years
-later, of his college days, with something of their athletic, dramatic,
-and fraternity incidents, of his teaching at Riceville, of the Riceville
-football and basket-ball teams, of the occasion for this trip to
-Chicago--and of Mollie June.
-
-At length the sherbet glasses were removed and some of the coffees,
-including Merriam's, refilled, and they all lit cigarettes. Merriam was
-pleasantly startled when Alicia too took a cigarette. He had read, of
-course, of women smoking, but he had never seen it, or expected to see
-it with his own eyes, except on the stage. It was more shocking to his
-secret soul than any amount of bosom and back.
-
-"You need not wait, Simpson," said Alicia. "We'll ring if we need you
-again."
-
-When the waiter had withdrawn Philip Rockwell took the center of the
-stage. He tilted back in his chair and abruptly began to talk. Part of
-the time he looked straight ahead of him as if addressing an audience,
-but now and again he turned his head and aimed his discourse straight at
-Merriam. He made only a pretence of smoking.
-
-"Mr. Merriam," he said, "by a curious chance--a freak of nature, as it
-were--you, who have thus far taken no part in the politics of the State
-and Nation, are in a position to render a great service this very night
-to the cause of Reform and incidentally to Senator and Mrs. Norman."
-
-"How so?" said Merriam. He was rather on his guard against Mr. Philip
-Rockwell.
-
-"It is a long story, perhaps," said that gentleman. "I gathered when we
-were introduced that you had heard of me. But I was not sure how much
-you have heard. I am at the present time the President of the Reform
-League of this city and its guiding and moving spirit."
-
-"And endowed with the superb modesty so characteristic of reformers,"
-interjected Alicia.
-
-The reformer paid no attention to this frivolous parenthesis.
-
-"Miss Wayward," he continued, "alluded earlier to my
-sobriquet--'One-Thing-at-a-Time Rockwell.' The epithet was first
-applied to me derisively by opposition newspapers. But it is a true
-description. Indeed it was derived from my frequent use of the phrase
-in my own speeches. I believe that to be successful, practically
-successful, Reform must center its efforts on one thing at a time--not
-waste its energies, its munitions, so to speak, by bombarding the whole
-entrenched line of evil and privilege at once, but concentrate its fire
-on one exposed position after another--take that one
-position--accomplish finally one definite thing--and then go on to some
-other one definite thing. Do you get me?"
-
-Merriam signified that he comprehended.
-
-Father Murray was more enthusiastic. "It is a truly splendid idea," he
-volunteered. "Since we have adopted it, under the leadership of Mr.
-Rockwell, the Reform League has really begun to do things. _To do
-things!_" he repeated, with an almost mysterious emphasis.
-
-"At the present time," Rockwell resumed, "the one thing which the Reform
-League is undertaking to _do_ is to secure decent traction conditions in
-this city--adequate service. We have so far succeeded that we have
-forced an unfriendly city council to pass the new Traction Ordinance.
-You are familiar with the new Ordinance, Mr. Merriam?"
-
-"Yes," said Merriam. By which we must suppose he meant that he had read
-headlines about it in the Chicago papers.
-
-"Those rascals," continued Rockwell, "never would have passed it--the
-men who own them would never have permitted them to pass it, no matter
-how unmistakable the demand of the people might be,--if they had not
-counted on one thing."
-
-Merriam perceived that an interrogation was demanded of him and took his
-cue.
-
-"What is that?" he asked.
-
-"They are counting," said Rockwell impressively, "they are counting on
-Mayor Black. They have believed the whole time that he can be depended
-on to veto it. And they are right! The scoundrels usually are. The
-Mayor, as every one knows, is a mere puppet. He will do as he is told.
-Only, the League has made such a stir, the people are so tremendously
-aroused, that he is frightened. And so, before acting, before writing
-the veto, which he has sense enough to see is likely to mean political
-suicide, he is coming here to-night to see Senator Norman, to get his
-instructions. That's what it amounts to. Norman holds the State
-machine in the hollow of his hand. If Norman tells him to veto, Black
-will veto. It may be bad for him with the voters if he does it, but it
-would be certain political death for a man like him to cross Norman.
-_And Norman will say, 'Veto!'_"
-
-"I see," said Merriam.
-
-Which was hardly true; he did not as yet see an inch ahead of his nose
-into this thing, but he thought it sounded well.
-
-"Where do I come in, though?" he added, belying his assumption of
-sagacity.
-
-"That's my very next point," said Rockwell.
-
-His chair came down on all fours. He squared it to the table, laid his
-neglected cigarette aside, put his arms on the cloth, and looked very
-straight at Merriam.
-
-"Are you aware, Mr. Merriam, that you bear a most striking physical
-resemblance to Senator Norman?"
-
-"I have been told so," said Merriam. "My mother often spoke of it.
-And--Mrs. Norman mentioned it to me before she was married. I have seen
-his pictures, of course, in the papers. I have never seen him in
-person." (This was true, for John Merriam had, quite inexcusably,
-stayed away from Mollie June's wedding.)
-
-"He has never seen you, then?"
-
-"He probably doesn't know of my existence."
-
-"So much the better," said Rockwell. "The only difficulty then is Mrs.
-Norman. And she can be eliminated."
-
-This facile elimination of Mollie June did not make an irresistible
-appeal to Merriam, but he held his tongue.
-
-Alicia Wayward saw the reformer's mistake.
-
-"Mr. Rockwell means," she threw in, "that Mrs. Norman can be shielded
-from the difficulties of the situation."
-
-"Exactly," said Rockwell quickly. "Mr. Merriam," he continued, "if you
-have never seen the Senator with your own eyes, you can have no
-realisation of the closeness of your resemblance to him. Hair, eyes,
-nose, mouth, size, carriage, manner, movement--it is truly wonderful.
-And it is the same with your voice. Father Murray here says he fairly
-jumped when you first spoke to him out in the Cabaret when he went over
-to question you."
-
-"He also says," interrupted Alicia, as if mischievously, "that it is
-Providential."
-
-"Please do not be irreverent, Miss Alicia," said the priest. "It does
-surely seem Providential--on this night of all nights. It surely seems
-so."
-
-"Well," said Merriam, a trifle bluntly perhaps, "I don't know what you
-mean by that. If my cousin and I look so much alike as you say, no
-doubt it's quite remarkable. Still such things happen often enough in
-families. What of it?"
-
-"I have explained," said Rockwell, with an air of much patience, "that
-Mayor Black is coming here, to this hotel, to-night, to see Senator
-Norman about the Ordinance, and that Norman will order him to veto it.
-We thought we had Norman fixed, but he has gone over to the magnates--as
-he always does in the end! Black will do as he is bid, and it will be a
-death blow. We can never pass it over his veto. It means the total
-ruin of five years of work, involving the expenditure of tens of
-thousands of dollars. And the cause of Reform in this city will be dead
-for years to come. The League will never survive, if we fail at this
-last ditch. It will collapse."
-
-"In short," said Alicia sweetly, "Mr. Rockwell himself will collapse."
-
-Rockwell took no heed of her.
-
-"Half an hour ago," he said, "I was sitting yonder in the Cabaret,
-dining with Miss Wayward and Father Murray. I was eating turtle soup
-and olives"--he laughed theatrically,--"but I was a desperate man. I
-had no hope, no interest left in life. Then I looked up and saw you.
-At first I mistook you for Senator Norman--even I, who have known the
-old hypocrite for a dozen years. I stared at you, wondering whether I
-should go over and make one last personal appeal to you--to him. And
-then I realised that you could not be he. For I knew positively that he
-was dining in his room. I looked closer. I saw that you were really a
-younger man--not that massaged, laced old roue. I stared on in my
-amazement, till Miss Wayward and Father Murray looked too, and Miss
-Wayward said, 'Why, there's Senator Norman now.' 'By God!' said I,
-'perhaps it is!' Do you see, Mr. Merriam?"
-
-"No," said Merriam, "I don't."
-
-"Ah, but you will, you must," said Rockwell. "Listen!" He looked at his
-watch. "It is now twenty minutes past seven. Norman is dining in his
-room. There is a man with him, a Mr. Crockett--one of the dozen men who
-own Chicago. He is as much interested in the Ordinance as I am--on the
-other side. He is giving Norman his instructions, for the Senator is
-Crockett's puppet, of course, as much as the Mayor is Norman's.
-Crockett will leave promptly at a quarter to eight. Mayor Black is due
-at eight."
-
-"How do you know these things?" interrupted Merriam.
-
-"It is my business to know things," said Rockwell. "The fact is," he
-added, "I planned to burst in on Norman and Black at their conference
-and threaten them in the name of the Reform League. It would have done
-no good, but I owed that much to the League."
-
-"And to yourself," said Alicia softly.
-
-"And to myself, yes!" said Rockwell, infinitesimally pricked at last.
-But he hurried on:
-
-"At ten minutes to eight, Mr. Merriam, I will telephone Norman. I will
-pretend to be old Schubert, the Mayor's private secretary. He has a
-dry, clipped voice that is easy to imitate. I will say that the Mayor
-is sick at his house. I will imply that he is drunk. He often is. I
-will say he is not too sick to veto the Ordinance before the Council
-meets at nine, but that he insists on seeing Senator Norman before he
-does it and asks that Norman come out to his house. I will say that I
-am sending a car for him. Norman will curse, but he will go. He is
-under orders, too, you see. At five minutes to eight we will send up
-word that Mayor Black's car is waiting for Senator Norman. There will
-be a car waiting. The driver will be Simpson."
-
-"I can fix it with the hotel people to get him off," said Alicia in
-response to a look from Merriam. "He was a chauffeur once for a
-while.--And he will do anything I ask him to," she added.
-
-"Norman will go down and get into that car. He will be driven, not to
-the Mayor's house, of course, but to--a certain flat, where he will be
-detained for several hours--very possibly all night."
-
-"By force?" asked Merriam, rather sternly.
-
-"Only by force of the affections," said Rockwell suavely. "The flat
-belongs, for the time being, to a certain young woman, a manicurist by
-profession, who is undoubtedly very pretty and in whom Norman--takes an
-interest. I happen to know that he pays the rent of the flat."
-
-Rockwell paused, but Merriam made no reply. He blushed, subcutaneously
-at any rate, for Alicia and Father Murray. The latter indeed affected
-inattention to this portion of Mr. Rockwell's discourse. But Alicia
-Wayward made no pretence of either misunderstanding or horror.
-
-In Merriam's mind a slight embarrassment quickly gave place to anger.
-That George Norman after three years--how much sooner who could
-tell?--should leave Mollie June for a--his mind paused before a word too
-ancient and too frank for professorial sensibilities.
-
-Rockwell quickly resumed:
-
-"As soon as Norman has gone I will take you to his room. We will put
-his famous crimson smoking jacket on you and establish you in his big
-armchair with a cigar and some whiskey and soda beside you. When Black
-comes he will find Senator Norman--you. All you will have to do is to
-be curt and sulky, damn him a bit, and tell him to sign the Ordinance.
-He'll never suspect you. As a matter of fact, he doesn't know the
-Senator well--never spoke with him privately above three times in his
-life. We'll have only side lights on. He won't stay. He'll be
-mightily relieved about the Ordinance and in a hurry to get away. Then
-you yourself can get away and catch your train for--for----"
-
-"Riceville," supplied Alicia.
-
-"That will be a real adventure for you, young man, and you will have
-saved the cause of Reform in the city of Chicago!"
-
-John Merriam smiled, frostily.
-
-"The reasons, then, Mr. Rockwell, why I should fraudulently impersonate
-a Senator of the United States, who happens to be my cousin, and in his
-name act in an important matter directly contrary to his own wishes are
-for the fun of the adventure and to save your Reform League from a
-setback. Is that correct?"
-
-"Philip," said Alicia quickly, "you and Father Murray go for a walk. I
-want to have a little talk with Mr. Merriam alone. Come back in twenty
-minutes."
-
-The implication of her last phrase was distinctly flattering to Merriam
-if he had understood it. Alicia Wayward would not have asked for more
-than ten minutes with most men.
-
-Rockwell smiled with lowered eyelids--a smile which it was certainly a
-mistake for him to permit himself, for it could not and did not fail to
-put Merriam on his guard--against Alicia.
-
-"Come, Murray," said Rockwell rising, "I should like a breath of real
-air, shouldn't you? And when Miss Wayward commands----" He waved his
-hand grandly. "Au revoir!"
-
-And he and the priest hastily departed.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER V*
-
- *ALICIA AND THE MOTIVES OF MEN*
-
-
-"Take another cigarette, won't you, Mr. Merriam?" said Alicia, as the
-curtain at the door fell behind Rockwell and Father Murray.
-
-"Thank you," said Merriam.
-
-He was excited, of course. All the stimulations of his evening,
-including more coffee than he was used to and an unaccustomed taste of
-wine and mystery and intrigue, could not fail to tell on the blood of
-youth. But he felt extraordinarily calm, and he was not in the least
-afraid of Alicia. He had not fully made up his mind about the proposed
-adventure, but Alicia knew several things about the wantings of men.
-
-"Let me light it for you," she pursued.
-
-She struck a match, which somehow she already had out of its box, put
-out a white hand and arm, took the cigarette from his fingers, put it to
-her own lips and lighted it, and handed it back to him.
-
-"Thank you," said Merriam again, just a little confused. Hesitatingly,
-with an undeniable trace of thrill, he put the cigarette to his own
-lips. Poor boy! It was an uneven contest!
-
-Alicia deftly moved her chair to the corner of the table, bringing it
-not very close but much closer to Merriam's. Close enough for him to
-catch the faint, unfamiliar perfume. She put out her hand again and
-drew one of the yellow roses from their bowl. She rested both arms on
-the table and played with the rose, drawing it through her fingers and
-up and down one white, rounded forearm.
-
-"Mr. Merriam," she said, "perhaps you have wondered why I am in this
-thing."
-
-As a matter of fact he had neglected to be curious on that point, but
-now he was.
-
-"Yes," he said.
-
-"Mr. Rockwell converted me. Oh, I can see you don't like him. You
-think he is hard and unscrupulous and self-seeking. Well, he is. All
-men are--at least, almost all men are"--she glanced at Merriam. "But he
-is a genuine reformer for all that. He is heart and soul for what he
-calls the People. He works tremendously for them all his time. And he
-is shrewd and fearless."
-
-Now it is probable that Alicia's little character sketch presented a
-very just picture of Philip Rockwell. But it did not appeal to Merriam
-as true, much less as likable. He was too young. He still wanted his
-heroes all heroic and his villains naught but black and red with almost
-visible horns and tail.
-
-He did not reply. He could not, however, remove his eyes from the
-felicitous meanderings of the yellow rose.
-
-"Well," sighed Alicia, "I was going to tell you how Mr. Rockwell
-converted me. You see, my father--but you don't know who my father is,
-do you? The newspapers always refer to him us 'the billionaire brewer.'
-They like the alliteration, I suppose. He's very busy now converting
-all his plants for the manufacture of near-beer." (She laughed as if
-that were a good joke.) "His youngest sister, my Aunt Geraldine, was
-Senator Norman's first wife. So I know George Norman well. I was quite
-a favourite of his when he used to come to our house before poor Aunt
-Jerry died. So Philip wanted me to 'use my influence' with Mr. Norman
-about his precious Ordinance. I wasn't much interested at first. I
-hadn't ridden in a street car, of course, in years."
-
-"Hadn't you?" said Merriam, quite at a loss.
-
-"No. When I go out I take either the limousine or the electric. So I
-really didn't know much about conditions, except, of course, from the
-cartoons about strap-hangers in the newspapers. Philip saw that that
-was why I was unsympathetic. So he dared me to go for a street-car ride
-with him. Of course I wouldn't take a dare.
-
-"It was about five o'clock in the afternoon. We took the limousine down
-to Wabash and Madison. There Philip made me get out on the street
-corner. It was horrid weather--a cold, blowy spring rain. But Philip was
-hard as a rock. He told the chauffeur to drive to the corner of Cottage
-Grove and Thirty-Ninth Street and wait for us. And _we_ waited for a
-car. It was terrible. We stood out in the street under the
-Elevated--by one of the posts, you know--for a little protection from
-the train. We hadn't any umbrella. The wind tore at my skirts and my
-hair. The trains going by overhead nearly burst your ears with noise.
-And automobiles and great motor trucks crashed past within a few inches
-of us and splashed mud and nearly stifled us with gasoline smells. And
-a crowd of other people got around us and knocked into us and walked on
-our feet and stuck umbrellas in our eyes. For a long time no car at all
-came. Then three or four came together, but they were all jammed full
-to the steps, so that we couldn't get on.
-
-"I was ready to give up. I told Philip so.
-
-"'Let's go into Mandel's,' I begged, 'and you can call a taxi.'
-
-"'No you don't,' he said. 'Here, we can get on this one.'
-
-"Another car had stopped about twenty feet from us. We joined a kind of
-football rush for the rear end. I tripped on my skirt when I tried to
-climb the steps, but Philip caught me by the arm and dragged me on, as
-though I had been a sack of flour.
-
-"Then for a long time we couldn't get inside but had to stand on the
-platform wedged like olives in a bottle. It was so dark and cold and
-noisy, and everybody was so wet and crushed and smelly. A man beside me
-smelled so strong of tobacco and whiskey and of--not having had a bath
-for a long time, that I was nearly ill. And I thought a poor little
-shop girl on the other side of me was going to faint.
-
-"After a long time some people got out at the other end of the car--at
-Twelfth Street, Philip says,--and some of us squeezed inside into the
-crowded aisle. Inside it was warm--hot, in fact,--but still smellier.
-Philip got me a strap, and I hung on to it. I don't care for
-strap-hanger jokes any more. It's terribly tiring, and it pulls your
-waist all out of shape.
-
-"'Bet you won't get a seat,' grinned Philip.
-
-"Of course I was bound then that I would. I looked about. Some of the
-men who were seated were reading papers the way they are in the
-cartoons. Others just sat and stared in front of them. I didn't blame
-them much. They looked tired, too. But I had to get a seat to spite
-Philip. The young man in the one before which I was standing, or
-hanging, looked rather nice. I made up my mind to get his seat. I had
-to look down inside his newspaper and crowd against his legs. At last,
-after looking up at me three or four times, he got up with a jerk as if
-he had just noticed me and took off his hat, and I smiled at him and at
-Philip and sat down. But he kept staring at me so that I wished I had
-let him alone.
-
-"I made the poor little shop girl sit on my lap. Nobody gave her a seat.
-I suppose she wouldn't work for it the way I did. She was a pretty
-little thing, too. Just a tiny bit like Mollie June Norman. Not so
-pretty, of course, but the same type.
-
-"Then there was nothing to do but wait till we got to Thirty-Ninth
-Street. Ages and ages. They ought to have been able to go to the South
-Pole and back.
-
-"When we did get there I put the little girl in my seat--she was going
-to Eighty-First Street, poor little thing,--and Philip and I got out and
-went home in the limousine, and he told me all about how the Ordinance
-would better things, and I promised to help him if I could."
-
-"And you did?" said Merriam. He was touched--whether by Alicia's own
-sufferings in the course of her remarkable exploration or by those of
-the little shop girl who looked like Mollie June, does not, perhaps,
-matter. He now quite fully liked Alicia. He saw that, in spite of her
-extreme decollete and her cigarettes, she had a generous heart.
-
-"I tried to," replied Alicia. "I saw George Norman, and I did my
-best--my very best. But he wouldn't promise anything. He only laughed
-and tried to kiss me."
-
-"Tried to kiss you!" echoed Merriam, naively aghast.
-
-"Yes," said Alicia, with her eyes demurely on the rose between her
-fingers.
-
-And John Merriam, looking at her, grasped clearly the possibility that a
-"boy senator" with whom Alicia had done her very best might try to kiss
-her.
-
-"So that is one reason why I am in it to the death," Alicia went on,
-"because George Norman--wouldn't listen to me. And I don't want Philip
-to fail."
-
-She laid one hand quickly over one of Merriam's hands, startling him so
-that he nearly drew his away. "I love him," she said, and her eyes
-shone effulgently into Merriam's. "He hasn't much money, and he is hard
-and--and conceited, but he is courageous. He dares anything. He dared
-to take me on that street-car ride. He would dare to burst in on the
-Senator and Mayor Black to-night. He dares think up this plan. A woman
-loves a Man."
-
-There is no doubt that Alicia pronounced "man" with a capital letter,
-and she looked challengingly at Merriam.
-
-"We are to be married next month," she added.
-
-"Oh!" gasped Merriam, his eyes staring in spite of himself at her hand
-that lay on his.
-
-The hand flew away as quickly as it had alighted, but he still felt its
-soft coolness on his fingers as she said:
-
-"Of course all this is why _I_ am in it, not why you should be. You
-can't do it just to please me. But you really ought to think of all
-those poor people, like the little shop girl--all the tired men and
-women--millions of them, Philip says--who have to endure that torture
-every night after long days of hard work. It's truly awful, and it
-might all be so much better if we only got the Ordinance. You could get
-it for them in one little half hour!"
-
-She looked hopefully at Merriam. He was in fact hesitant. To have the
-fun of the thing, to gratify this strange, attractive Alicia, and to
-render an important service to the population of a great city--it was
-tempting.
-
-"There's another thing," Alicia hurried on. "You knew Mollie June
-Norman. She was one of your students. I think you ought to do it for
-her sake."
-
-"Why so?" Merriam's question came swift and sharp.
-
-"Because if Senator Norman kills the Ordinance it will be his ruin. It
-will cost him Chicago's vote in the next election, and he can't win on
-the Down-State vote alone."
-
-"I thought Rockwell said the League would collapse."
-
-Possibly Alicia had forgotten this. But she only shrugged her
-shoulders.
-
-"It may or it mayn't. But either way the people are aroused. Philip
-swears they will beat Norman if he betrays them now. He is sure they
-can and will. And if the 'boy senator' were unseated and had to retire
-to private life it would be terrible for Mollie June. He's bad enough
-to live with as it is."
-
-At this point Merriam was visited by a sudden and splendid idea. Since
-he did not disclose it to Alicia, I feel in honour bound to conceal it
-for the present from the reader.
-
-Alicia detected its presence in his eyes and judiciously kept silent.
-
-It took about ten seconds for that idea to grow from nothingness into
-full flower. For perhaps five seconds longer Merriam inwardly
-contemplated its unique beauty. Then he said:
-
-"I'll do it!"
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER VI*
-
- *STAGE-SETTING*
-
-
-Alicia gave him no time for reconsideration or after-thoughts.
-
-"Good!" she cried, "I was sure you would."
-
-She was on her feet in an instant, and as he got to his she held out her
-hand. Merriam took it--to shake hands on their bargain was his thought.
-But Alicia never exactly shook hands. She touched or pressed or
-squeezed according to circumstances. On this occasion it was a warm,
-clinging squeeze. Her other hand patted Merriam's shoulder.
-
-"I was sure you would," she repeated. "No Man"--again the capital
-letter was unmistakable--"could have resisted--the--the opportunity."
-
-The curtain at the door was lifted, and Philip Rockwell's voice said:
-"May I come in? The twenty minutes are up."
-
-They were. Just up. Alicia had done her part in exactly the fraction
-of an hour she had given herself. No vaudeville act could have been
-more precisely timed.
-
-"Yes. Come in, dear," said Alicia. "Mr. Merriam will do it. We were
-just shaking hands on it."
-
-Rockwell crossed the room in a rush and caught Merriam's hand as Alicia
-relinquished it. He pumped vigorously. In his eyes shone the
-unmistakable light of that genuine enthusiasm which Alicia had described
-to her skeptical auditor.
-
-"You're the right sort," he cried. "You are doing a great thing, Mr.
-Merriam. You will never regret it. But I can't thank you now," he
-added, dropping Merriam's hand in mid-air, so to speak. "It's ten
-minutes of eight. That money-bag, Crockett, came out of the elevator
-just before I came back. I have a car at the Ladies' Entrance."
-
-"With Simpson?" asked Alicia.
-
-"Yes. I had to get things ready. The time was so short. I fixed the
-head waiter. Simpson seemed ready enough. Has some old grudge against
-Norman, I think."
-
-"Yes," said Alicia, "he has. I'm a little afraid--I wish I could have
-seen him. Never mind. It can't be helped. Where's Father Murray?"
-
-"Watching to buttonhole the Mayor if he should come too soon."
-
-He looked critically for a moment at Merriam, seemed satisfied, and
-crossed to the telephone on the sideboard.
-
-"I'll ring up the curtain," he said.
-
-He laughed boyishly in his excitement and new hope. He seemed very
-different now from the hard-eyed, middle-aged fellow of an hour ago.
-Merriam saw how Alicia might admire him.
-
-"Give me Room Three-Two-Three," he said into the telephone, his eyes
-smiling at them.
-
-A moment later a harsh, dry old man's voice was saying:
-
-"Is this Senator Norman?--This is Mr. Schubert, private secretary to
-Mayor Black. The Mayor is sick.--I can't help it, sir. He's sick all
-right. He's out here at his house.--Yes, he can veto the Ordinance all
-right if it's necessary. But he won't do it without seeing you first.
-He wants you to come out. He's sent a car for you. It ought to be down
-there at the Ladies' Entrance by now.--No, it won't do any good to call
-him up. I'm here at his house now. He's in bed. And he won't veto
-unless he sees you. Really, sir, if you'll pardon me, you'd better
-come.--Thank you, sir!"
-
-Rockwell clicked the receiver triumphantly into its hook.
-
-"That's done," he said. "Alicia, dear, go up to the lobby on the
-women's side and watch the hallway leading to the Ladies' Entrance.
-Norman should pass out that way within five minutes. Follow him far
-enough to make sure that Simpson gets him. And then let us know.
-Meanwhile I'll coach Mr. Merriam a little."
-
-"Right," said Alicia.
-
-She moved to the door. The eyes of both men followed her. When Alicia
-moved the eyes of men did follow. And she knew it. At the doorway she
-turned and blew a kiss, which might be said to fall with gracious
-impartiality between her lover and the younger man. It was a pretty
-exit.
-
-"She's a splendid girl," said Rockwell, his eyes lingering on the
-curtain that had cut her off from them.
-
-"Yes," said Merriam.
-
-Rockwell, still by the sideboard, reached for the long bottle.
-
-"Have another glass of this?"
-
-"I don't mind," said Merriam. The fact is, a bit of stage fright had
-come in for him when Alicia went out.
-
-"There's not much I can tell you," Rockwell said, as he poured out the
-yellow fluid. "You'll have to depend mostly on the inspiration of the
-moment. You look the part all right. Your voice is all right, too. Act
-as grumpy as you like. Damn him about a bit.--You can swear?" he asked
-hastily. A sudden horrible doubt of pedagogical capabilities had
-crossed his mind.
-
-Now Merriam was not a profane man, but some of his fraternity brethren
-had been. Also he remembered the vituperative exploits of his football
-coach between halves when the game was going badly.
-
-"Swear?" he cried, as harshly as possible. "Of course I can swear, you
-damn fool!"
-
-For three seconds Rockwell was startled. Then he laughed.
-
-"Fine!" he cried. "You'll do it! All there is to it, really, is to
-tell him to sign the Ordinance and to get out. He may ask about
-Crockett. If he wants to know why he's changed his mind, tell him it's
-none of his damn business. If he refers to a Madame Couteau, you must
-look pleased. She's the pretty little manicurist whom Norman will be on
-his way to visit. Black knows of that affair, and he knows Norman likes
-to talk about it. So he may drag it in with the idea of getting on your
-blind side. You can tell him to shut up, of course, but you must act
-gratified."
-
-"Yes," said Merriam in a noncommittal tone.
-
-But Rockwell did not notice. He was sipping the Benedictine, with his
-mind on his problem.
-
-"That's all I can think of," he said in a moment. "I'll be in the next
-room--the bedroom of the suite, you know,--and if you should get into
-deep water, I'll burst in, just as I meant to on the real Senator, and
-pull you out. We ought to get it over in fifteen minutes at the outside
-and get you off. There's just the least chance in the world, of course,
-that Senator Norman might get away from Simpson and come back. And
-there's Mrs. Norman."
-
-"Where will she be?" asked Merriam as he took a rather large sip of his
-cordial.
-
-"She's in the lobby now with Miss Norman--the Senator's sister, you
-know,--listening to the orchestra." (Merriam vaguely recalled the
-elderly woman whom he had seen with Mollie June in the Cabaret.) "The
-Senator was going to take them to the theater after he had finished with
-Black."
-
-"What will they do when he doesn't show up?" Merriam inquired; but to
-all appearances he was chiefly interested at the moment in the best of
-liqueurs.
-
-"Probably go without him. She's used to George Norman's broken
-engagements by now."
-
-"I see," said Merriam without expression.
-
-"Alicia and Murray will keep an eye on them, of course," Rockwell added.
-
-And then both men jumped. It was only the telephone, but conspiracy
-makes neurasthenics of us all.
-
-Rockwell answered it.
-
-"Yes.--Good.--That's all right.--Oh!--Yes, we'll go at once."
-
-He turned excitedly to Merriam.
-
-"It's Alicia. Norman has come down and got into Simpson's car. Mrs.
-Norman is still in the lobby. And the Mayor has come in. Murray's got
-him, but he won't be able to hold him long. We must go right up to the
-room. Come--Senator!"
-
-Merriam followed out of the private dining-room and down the corridor at
-a great pace into a main hallway and to an elevator.
-
-Several people looked hard at Merriam. One important-looking elderly
-man stopped and held out his hand:
-
-"How are you, Senator?"
-
-But Rockwell crowded rudely between them.
-
-"Excuse me, Colonel, but we must catch this car.--Very urgent!" he
-called as the door clicked.
-
-And Merriam had the presence of mind to add, "Look you up later!"
-
-"Good----" Rockwell began as they stopped at the main floor, but he
-paused on the first word with his mouth open.
-
-A very large man, large every way, in evening clothes, with a fine head
-of white hair and an air of conscious distinction, was stepping into the
-car. He saw Merriam and Rockwell. Then instantly he appeared not to
-have observed them, hesitated, backed gracefully out of the little group
-that was entering the elevator, and was gone.
-
-The car smoothly ascended.
-
-"Three!" said Rockwell to the elevator man. Then to Merriam he
-whispered, "That was the Mayor! He's got away from Murray."
-
-"Ask for your key," whispered Rockwell, as they stepped out.
-
-For five protracted steps Merriam's mind struggled frantically after the
-room number. He had just grasped it (3-2-3!) when he perceived that his
-perturbation had been unnecessary.
-
-For the floor clerk--a pretty blonde of about thirty--was looking at him
-with her sunniest smile.
-
-"Your key, Senator?"
-
-"Yes, please," he managed to say.
-
-As she handed him the key her fingers lightly touched his for a second,
-and she said in a low tone, "The violets are lovely."
-
-He saw that she was wearing a large bunch of those expensively modest
-flowers at her waist and understood that his cousin's extra-marital
-interests might not be limited to Madame Couteau.
-
-He lingered just a moment and replied in a tone as low as her own, "They
-look lovely where they are now."
-
-But an appalling difficulty loomed over him even as he murmured. For he
-did not know whether Room 323 lay to the right or the left, and if he
-should start in the wrong direction----
-
-But Rockwell knew and was already moving to the left. Merriam followed.
-In his relief he smiled brightly back at the floor clerk.
-
-At the corner where the hall turned Rockwell stopped, and Merriam,
-coming up with him, read "323" on the door before them. Both men looked
-up at the transom. It was dark.
-
-"In!" said Rockwell.
-
-Merriam inserted the key, turned it, and cautiously opened the door a
-couple of inches, becoming, as he did so, thrillingly conscious of the
-burglarious quality of their enterprise.
-
-No light or sound came from within.
-
-For only three or four seconds Rockwell listened. Then he pushed the
-door wide, stepped past Merriam, and felt for the switch.
-
-"You haven't invited me in, Senator," he said as the room went alight,
-"but I'm a forward sort of fellow.--Come inside, and close the door," he
-added.
-
-Merriam pushed the door shut behind him and stared about. The apartment
-was probably the most gorgeous he had ever seen. The walls were a soft
-cream colour, the woodwork white, the carpet and hangings and lampshades
-rose. Most of the furniture was mahogany, some of it upholstered in
-rose-coloured tapestry. On a table half way down one side of the room
-stood a bowl of red roses. In the wall opposite Merriam, between the
-windows, was a fireplace of white marble, containing a gas log, with a
-large mirror above the mantel in a frame of white and gold. Before this
-fireplace stood a huge upholstered easy chair, with a pink-shaded floor
-lamp on one side of it and a small mahogany tabaret on the other.
-
-While Merriam was endeavouring to appreciate this magnificence, Rockwell
-quickly crossed the sitting room and passed through a door at one side.
-After a moment he returned, crossed the room again, and disappeared
-through a second door. Reemerging, he announced triumphantly, "No one in
-the bedrooms!"
-
-But Merriam's eyes rested, fascinated, on a garment which Rockwell had
-brought back with him from the second bedroom--a luxurious smoking
-jacket of a most lurid crimson colour, which clashed outrageously with
-the rose and pinks of the senatorial sitting room.
-
-Rockwell grinned at the look on Merriam's face.
-
-"A historic garment, sir," he declared. "The Boy Senator's crimson
-smoking jacket is a household word with most of the six million souls of
-this commonwealth of Illinois. Off with your tails, sir, and into it!"
-
-"Hurry!" he cried, as Merriam hesitated. "The Mayor will be here any
-minute."
-
-"Why didn't he come up in the elevator with us?" Merriam asked while
-changing.
-
-"All because of me, sir," replied Rockwell, in excellent spirits. "The
-Mayor abhors me and all my works so sincerely that I feel I have not
-lived in vain.--Now, then, sit in that big chair before the fireplace.
-Here, light this cigar. I'll start the gas log going and bring in the
-tray with the siphon and glasses and rye that I saw in the other
-room.--Ah!"
-
-The telephone had rung, and Merriam had leapt out of his chair.
-
-"Answer it," said Rockwell.
-
-Merriam stepped to the telephone, which was on the wall, laid down his
-cigar, gripped his nerve hard, and put the receiver to his ear:
-
-"Hello!"
-
-A deep voice, boomingly suave, replied:
-
-"Senator Norman?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"This is Mr. Black. Have you got rid of Rockwell yet?"
-
-"No, not yet."
-
-"Well, can't you throw him out? I am due at the Council meeting at
-nine, of course. And I don't care to discuss--matters--with you in his
-presence, naturally. When shall I come up?"
-
-Now the Mayor's rather long speech had given Merriam time to think. He
-recalled his great idea, and a new inspiration, as to ways and means,
-came to him.
-
-"Eight-thirty," he replied curtly.
-
-"But, good God!" cried the Mayor, "that gives us so little time. Can't
-you----"
-
-"I said eight-thirty, damn you!"
-
-And Merriam hung up and turned to face Rockwell at his elbow.
-
-"But why eight-thirty?" demanded the latter as soon as he understood
-that it had been the Mayor. "Man alive, we ought to be gone by then!
-What are we to do with the next twenty minutes? You must have lost your
-head. Call him again. Call the desk and have him paged and told to
-come right up."
-
-Without a word Merriam turned to the telephone again and asked for the
-desk.
-
-But a moment later he gave Philip Rockwell one of the major surprises of
-the latter's life. For what he said was:
-
-"Please page Mrs. George Norman, with the message that Senator Norman
-would like to see her right away in their rooms. Repeat that,
-please.--That's right. Thank you!"
-
-"What in hell!" cried Rockwell, belatedly released by the click of the
-receiver from a paralysis of astonishment.
-
-Merriam picked up his cigar, walked back to the easy chair, and seated
-himself comfortably. He was excited now to the point of a quite
-theatrical composure.
-
-"Nothing in hell," he said. "Quite the contrary, in fact. I want to
-have a few minutes' conversation with Mrs. Norman. That's all."
-
-"See here!" said Rockwell. "What funny business is this? I won't
-have----"
-
-"Won't you? All right. Just as you say. If you don't like the way I'm
-playing my part, I'll drop it and walk right out of that door. I have a
-ticket for the theater to-night. I can still be in time."
-
-The other man stared and gulped. It was hard for him to realise that
-this young cub was master of the situation, and not he, Rockwell.
-
-"But this is serious!" he cried. "The Ordinance! The Reform League!
-The whole city of Chicago! You can't risk these for----"
-
-He stopped. Then:
-
-"Do you realise, you young fool, that if we're caught in this room, it
-will mean jail for both of us?"
-
-But Merriam in his present mood was incapable of realising anything of
-the sort. In his mind's eye he saw Mollie June stepping into the
-elevator and saving in a voice of heavenly sweetness to the happy
-elevator man, "Three, please!"
-
-An outer crust of his consciousness made pert reply to Rockwell:
-
-"That would be bad for the Reform League, wouldn't it?" and added, "But
-you're willing to risk it for the Ordinance?"
-
-"Yes, I am," began Rockwell, "but----"
-
-"Would you risk it for Alicia?" Merriam interrupted.
-
-"What has Alicia got to do with it?"
-
-But he understood, and knew that argument was useless, and stared in
-helpless anger and alarm while the younger man carefully, grandly blew a
-beautifully perfect smoke ring into the air.
-
-It was the youngster who spoke, still theatrically calm:
-
-"You'd better go into the bedroom. She'll be here in a moment. Shut
-the door, please. And keep away from it!"
-
-It was one of the secrets of Philip Rockwell's success in politics that,
-masterful as he was, he knew when to yield. He took a step towards one
-of the bedrooms.
-
-"Make it short," he pleaded.
-
-"Eight-thirty!" said Merriam.
-
-A gentle knocking sounded at the door.
-
-Merriam was on his feet without volition of his own, while Rockwell,
-almost as instinctively, slipped into the bedroom.
-
-Then the younger man recovered himself, sat down, his feet to the gas
-log and his back to the door, and called, "Come in!"
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER VII*
-
- *BOY AND GIRL*
-
-
-The door was opened and closed. John Merriam's straining ears could
-catch no definite sound of footsteps or skirts, and he did not dare to
-look around. Yet by some sixth sense, it seemed, he was aware of Mollie
-June's progress half way across the room and aware that she had stopped,
-some feet away from him.
-
-"What is it--George?" she asked.
-
-It was only too clear that Mollie June's lord and master was not in the
-habit of sending for her.
-
-"Where is--Miss Norman?"
-
-Merriam was conscious that Senator Norman probably did not refer to his
-sister in that fashion, but he did not know her given name.
-
-"Aunt Mary? I left her in the lobby. Did you want her too?"
-
-There was a note of eagerness in the question.
-
-"No!"
-
-Silence. Mollie June stood waiting in the center of the room. The
-significance of her failure to approach her husband was unmistakable.
-
-Then he said: "Would you very much mind if you should miss the theater
-to-night?"
-
-"Why--no. Is there anything the matter, George?"
-
-"Not for me," said Merriam, and he rose and faced her.
-
-"I was afraid--" She stopped, looked hard.
-
-"George, you look--oh!"
-
-She passed her hand across her eyes. It was a stage gesture, but when
-stage situations occur in real life the conventional "business" of the
-boards is often justified.
-
-She looked again.
-
-"Mr. Merriam!"
-
-John Merriam stepped quickly forward. It occurred to him that she might
-faint. He had read many novels.
-
-But Mollie June did nothing of the sort.
-
-"Mr. Merriam!" she cried again. "How do you come here? Where is--Mr.
-Norman? How did you get in _that_?"
-
-She pointed to the famous smoking jacket. Her bewilderment was
-increasing. She looked nervously about, as if suspecting that Merriam,
-for the sake of the crimson garment, had murdered her husband and
-concealed his body.
-
-Merriam had stopped. Almost he might have wished that she had fainted.
-It would have been delicious to carry her in his arms and place her in
-the Senator's easy chair and bring water and when her eyes opened
-wonderingly upon him softly whisper her name. As it was he could only
-say formally:
-
-"Let me take your cloak--Mrs. Norman--won't you? And sit down."
-
-Mechanically she let him take the opera cloak from her shoulders, and
-when he caught hold of the senatorial chair and swung it around and
-pushed it towards her she sat tremblingly erect on the edge of it. Her
-eyes dwelt upon his face as if fascinated.
-
-"Isn't it funny you look so _much_ alike? I never realised it--so much.
-But--where is _he_? Why----?"
-
-Merriam caught up a small chair, placed it in front of hers, and sat
-down.
-
-"Listen, Mollie June," he said pleadingly, using unconsciously the name
-that ran in his thoughts.
-
-His plan, as it had taken shape while he talked with Mayor Black on the
-telephone, was to tell her in advance of Rockwell's plot and to carry it
-through only with her approval or consent--for was not his first loyalty
-to her? His original idea, and his real motive, of course, had been
-only to see her. And now that he had her there he found he hated to
-waste time on explanations. But there was nothing for it. She could
-not be at ease or clear in her mind until she understood. So, rapidly
-and candidly, he related how at the instance of Mr. Rockwell the Senator
-had been decoyed away, while he was there to impersonate him with Mayor
-Black, so that the latter should sign instead of vetoing the Traction
-Ordinance. Then he waited for he knew not what--amazement, fright,
-anger, dissuasion.
-
-But Mollie June did not seem much interested in traction ordinances.
-Presumably Senator Norman had not cared to educate his young wife about
-political matters.
-
-"Why did you send for _me_?" she asked.
-
-Her question was almost too direct for him. He could not say, to ask
-her approval of the plan against her husband.
-
-"I had to see you," was all he could reply.
-
-"Why?"
-
-But she knew the real reason. The turning of her eyes away from him
-confessed it.
-
-It was his chance to say, "Because I love you." An older man might have
-said it. But the young are timid and conventional--not bold and
-reckless, as is alleged. He remembered that she was another man's wife
-and only spoke her name:
-
-"Mollie June!"
-
-Perhaps that did as well. In fact it was, in the reticent dialect of
-youth, the same thing.
-
-She looked at him a moment, then quickly away again.
-
-"You never called me that but once before--to-night," she said.
-
-At first he found no answer. His mind scarcely sought one. He was
-absorbed in merely looking at her. She was indeed girlishly perfect as
-she sat there, almost primly upright, in her white frock, her slender
-figure framed in the rose-coloured tapestry of the big chair's back and
-arms, which gave an effect as of a blush to her cheeks and to the white
-shoulders which he had never seen before except across the spaces of the
-Peacock Cabaret. To the eyes of middle age she would have been,
-perhaps, merely "charming." In his she shone with the divine radiance
-of Aphrodite. And his were right, of course.
-
-He was almost trembling when at length he said:
-
-"That was on--that last night."
-
-"Yes," said Aphrodite, who is always chary of speech.
-
-Suddenly he saw that her averted face was wistful, sad.
-
-"Are you happy, Mollie June?" he cried.
-
-Though she turned only partly to him he saw that her eyes were more a
-woman's eyes than he had known them and were full of tears.
-
-"Not--very," she said.
-
-He sat dumbly on his chair, full of pain for her, yet not altogether
-saddened that she should not be entirely happy with another man.
-
-But now her face was fully towards him, and her eyes had become dry and
-looked past him.
-
-"Oh, Mr. Merriam--you don't know! I can't tell you----"
-
-He was filled with horror--almost boyishly terrified--by such dim
-visions as a man may have of what her lot might be.
-
-"If I could only help you!" he cried, as earnestly as all the other
-separated lovers in the world have said those very words.
-
-The eyes that looked beyond him came back to his face. The Mollie June
-whom he had known had had her girlish poise, and this more tragic Mollie
-June did not lose her self-control for long.
-
-"You _have_ helped me--Mr. Merriam. Oh, I am glad you brought me here!
-When I saw you in--the Cabaret, I just ran away from you. I couldn't
-even let you speak to me. Afterwards I waited upstairs in the lobby. I
-thought--I might see you there. But you didn't come. Then I thought
-George had sent for me!"
-
-She stopped as if that was a climax.
-
-Merriam leaned forward. He wanted to put his hand over one of hers that
-lay on the arm of her chair, but did not dare to. His tongue, however,
-was released at last.
-
-"If ever I can help you in any way, Mollie June, you must let me know.
-I would do anything for you. I will always be ready."
-
-He paused abruptly, though only for a second. A dark thought had crossed
-his mind: after all the "Boy Senator" was an old man (from the
-standpoint of twenty-eight), and leading a life unhealthy for old men.
-He hurried on:
-
-"I will wait for you always. Perhaps some day----"
-
-Did she comprehend his meaning? He could not tell, and he did not know
-whether to hope she did or did not. But stress of conflicting emotions
-made him venturesome. He did put his hand over hers.
-
-Hers did not move.
-
-His fingers slipped under hers, ready to raise her hand.
-
-"That last night in Riceville, Mollie June, I kissed your--glove.
-To-night I want to kiss your hand--to make me yours--if you should need
-me."
-
-She did not draw her hand away, but she said:
-
-"You oughtn't to--now--Mr. Merriam."
-
-The formal name by which she had continually addressed him pricked.
-
-"Won't you call me 'John,' Mollie June, just for this quarter of an hour
-before the Mayor comes?"
-
-"Oh, the Mayor!" she cried in alarmed remembrance.
-
-"Call me 'John,' dear--for fifteen minutes!"
-
-In his voice and eyes were both entreaty and command, and Mollie June
-could not resist them.
-
-"John!" she whispered.
-
-And he raised her hand and bent quickly forward, and his lips pressed
-her fingers. A bare second. Yet it was in his mind a solemn, a
-sacramental kiss. He straightened up triumphant, happy. Youth asks so
-little.
-
-"Now you know you have a right to me!" he cried. "To send for me. To
-use me any way, any time!"
-
-There came a loud knocking at the door.
-
-Mollie June started half way out of the chair and then sank back.
-Merriam, on his feet and part way across the floor, stopped confused.
-He perceived that he ought to get Mollie June out of the room.
-
-The knocking resounded again. And immediately the door was tried and
-opened, and a man stepped in. It was the large man with the white hair
-who had started to enter the elevator--Mayor Black.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER VIII*
-
- *PASSAGES WITH MAYOR BLACK*
-
-
-Mayor of the great city of Chicago was hurriedly apologetic:
-
-"I beg your pardon, Senator. You said eight-thirty, you know, and it's
-that now. I came up and knocked. Evidently you did not hear. A man I
-met in the lobby told me that you had left the hotel in a taxi half an
-hour ago. He said he saw you go. So I tried the door and when it opened
-stepped in, just to make sure. I am sorry to have intruded."
-
-Apparently, however, he did not intend to withdraw.
-
-Mollie June crouched frightened in her chair, but Merriam was rapidly
-pulling himself together.
-
-"It is I who should apologise for keeping you waiting, Mayor Black," he
-said. "I will ask Mrs. Norman to excuse us. Will you step into the
-next room for a few minutes, Mollie June? We shall not be long."
-
-He went back to her chair and held out his hand.
-
-She took it and rose. Her spirit, too, was reasserting itself. She
-faced the Mayor with a smile:
-
-"Good evening, Mr. Black."
-
-"Good evening, Mrs. Norman." He bowed gallantly. "I am very sorry----"
-
-"Oh," she cried lightly, one would have said happily, "business is
-business, I know." Then to Merriam: "You won't belong?"
-
-"Only a minute--dear."
-
-(Perhaps we can hardly blame him for profiting by the license his role
-gave him to address her so.)
-
-He moved to the door opposite to that through which Rockwell had slipped
-away fifteen minutes earlier and opened it for her. She passed through
-into the darkness of the other room. He felt for the switch and pushed
-it.
-
-As the light went on she turned and smiled at him:
-
-"Thank you."
-
-For an instant it seemed to him--perhaps to both of them--that she was
-really his wife, who was leaving him for a few minutes only, whom he
-would soon rejoin.
-
-Then he turned to face Mayor Black.
-
-"I need stay only a minute, Senator," the Mayor was saying. "If I had
-known you were engaged with Mrs. Norman, I shouldn't have bothered you.
-It wasn't really necessary. I met Mr. Crockett downstairs while I was
-waiting. He told me the answer. But since I had the engagement with
-you I came up. If I may, I'll write the veto right here, and then I can
-go on to the Council meeting."
-
-As he spoke he drew a thick roll of paper from his overcoat pocket,
-unfolded it, opened it at the last sheet, and laid it on a small writing
-table.
-
-"I shan't give any reasons," he added, sitting down and picking up a
-pen. "Least said, soonest mended--eh, Senator?"
-
-"But you're not to veto! You're to sign!" cried Merriam.
-
-Perhaps if he had more fully grasped the significance of the other's
-statement about Mr. Crockett he would have been less abrupt; but that
-mighty financier was only a dim name to his mind.
-
-"What?" said Black, turning in his chair.
-
-The Mayor's tone gave Merriam some realisation of the seriousness of the
-new situation. But he could only stand to his guns.
-
-"You're to _sign_! I don't care what Crockett said. I don't care a
-damn what he said," he corrected himself. "You do what I say, damn
-you!"
-
-"But how is this?" exclaimed the Mayor. "Crockett said you fully agreed
-that the best interests----"
-
-He stopped, looking intently at Merriam.
-
-In the excitement of the dialogue which had followed Merriam's sending
-for Mollie June Rockwell had neglected the precaution he had had in mind
-of having only side lights on. Rockwell had planned, also, that Merriam
-should sit facing the gas log with his back to the room and look at the
-Mayor as little as possible. Now the boy stood where the full glare of
-the chandelier shone on his face. Perhaps, too, the emotions of a
-youthful love scene, such as he had just passed through, were not the
-best preparation in the world for counterfeiting the slightly worn
-cheeks and slightly tired eyes of an elderly if well-preserved
-politician.
-
-"Who in hell are you?" gasped the Mayor.
-
-Merriam was certainly startled. Perhaps he showed it just a little.
-But he stood up bravely.
-
-"You know damn well who I am. And you do as I say or get out of Chicago
-politics. I'll attend to Crockett," he added. "That's my affair."
-
-"Is that so? Well, I guess it's my affair who makes a monkey of me!
-I----"
-
-Again the Mayor stopped abruptly and stared. Then suddenly he rose.
-
-"I was told the Senator had left the hotel. I think I was correctly
-informed. What sort of a trick is this? Who _are_ you?"
-
-"Damn you----" Merriam began, with realistic sincerity, but with the
-vaguest ideas as to what more substantial statement should follow.
-
-At this moment, however, Rockwell opened his door and stepped into the
-room.
-
-"Aha!" cried the Mayor. No stage villain could have said it better.
-"Mr. Rockwell! Of the Reform League, I believe!" He bowed
-sardonically. "'One-Thing-at-a-Time Rockwell!' Well, one thing at a
-time like this"--he pointed at Merriam--"ought to be enough for a
-reformer!"
-
-"Good evening, Mayor Black," said Rockwell. "I believe you were about to
-sign the Ordinance."
-
-"I was _not_. In spite of the _Senator_ here. I don't get a chance to
-defy Senator Norman every day. I rather enjoy it!--And let me tell
-you," he added, "if you and your friends in that damned League make any
-more trouble for me or Senator Norman or the Ordinance or anything else
-after this--if you don't shut up and lie low and keep pretty damn quiet,
-we'll show you up, my boy. This would make a pretty little story for the
-newspapers--and for the State's Attorney, too! We might call it 'The
-Ethics of Reform!' Oh, we have you where we want you now, Mr. Reformer!
-As for this young impostor here, we'll have to look him up a bit. A
-very promising young gentleman!"
-
-The Mayor evidently enjoyed the center of the stage. He towered tall
-and imposing and righteous, and looked triumphantly from Rockwell to
-Merriam and back again.
-
-"I really think you'd better sign it," said Rockwell. He spoke rather
-low.
-
-"What do you mean?" cried the Mayor.
-
-Then he thought he saw.
-
-"Oh, it's strong-arm work next, is it?"
-
-There was a note of alarm mingled with his irony, and the magnificence
-of his pose weakened a little. Rockwell was a determined-looking
-fellow, and there was Merriam to help him, and the Mayor was not really
-a very brave man. But he went on talking to save his face:
-
-"You certainly are a jewel of a reformer, Rockwell!"
-
-Then he saw a point and quickly recovered his full grandeur.
-
-"I don't quite see how you're going to manage, though. Of course, if it
-were a case of _preventing_ me from signing, you might do it--the two of
-you! But signing's rather different, isn't it? You can lead a horse to
-water---- Of course, you can club me or hold a revolver to my head.
-But, you see, I know you wouldn't dare to fire a revolver here in this
-room. So just how will you force my fingers to form the letters? Or
-perhaps you will try forgery? Is forgery the next act, Mr. Reformer?"
-
-Rockwell smiled. He was in no hurry to reply. Merriam still stood, as
-he had throughout this unforeseen dialogue, a rigid spectator.
-
-Then, in the moment's silence, very inopportunely, a clock, somewhere
-outside, struck the hour--a quarter to nine.
-
-Rockwell tried to drown it, saying, "I'm hardly so versatile as that."
-
-But the Mayor had heard and understood.
-
-"Oh, that's it!" he cried.
-
-"Yes, that's it!" said Rockwell, and the center of the stage
-automatically shifted to him. "If that Ordinance is not returned to the
-Council with your veto by nine o'clock to-night, it becomes a law
-whether you sign it or not! You're a bit slow, Mr. Mayor, but you've
-got it at last!"
-
-The Mayor did not answer. He shifted slightly on his feet. His hand
-shot out. He grabbed the Ordinance from the waiting table and rushed
-for the door.
-
-"Catch him!" shouted Rockwell. "Hold him!"
-
-Merriam had been a football player. As if released from a spring he
-darted after the Mayor. From habit he tackled low. They went down with
-something of a crash, knocking over an ash stand as they fell, and the
-Mayor gave a groan. If he had ever known how to fall properly, he had
-forgotten. Merriam hoped there were no bones broken.
-
-But Rockwell was wasting no thoughts on commiseration. He was kneeling
-over the fallen ruler of the city with his hands clapped over his
-mouth--to prevent further groans or other outcry.
-
-"Get the paper!" he said.
-
-Merriam scrambled forward and tried to pull the Ordinance from the hand
-at the end of the outstretched arm. It was held tight. He was afraid
-of tearing it.
-
-"Twist his arm," said Rockwell.
-
-A very little twist sufficed. The Mayor gave up. Merriam rose to his
-feet with the document.
-
-"Will you be quiet?" Rockwell demanded in the Mayor's ear, and released
-his mouth enough to enable him to answer.
-
-"Yes," said the Mayor feebly. "Let me up."
-
-"All right. That's better. If you make any rumpus we'll down you
-again, you know, and tie you up and gag you.--Give me the paper," he
-added to Merriam, "and help him up, will you?"
-
-He stood watching while the younger man assisted the Mayor in the
-ponderous job of getting on his feet.
-
-"I hope you aren't hurt, sir," said Merriam.
-
-The Mayor looked sourly at him. "Thanks!" He felt of his arms and
-passed his hands up and down over his ribs. "I guess I'm all
-right--except my clothes."
-
-In fact his white shirt front was crumpled and his broadcloth coat and
-trousers were dusty with cigar ash from the fallen stand. Merriam was
-in little better condition. They were not dressed for football
-practice. Rockwell only was still immaculate.
-
-"I'll get a brush," said Merriam. No longer a Senator, he felt very
-boyish and anxious to be useful.
-
-As he spoke he turned to the room--the fall had occurred near the door
-into the hall--and stopped nonplused. For in her bedroom door stood
-Mollie June, her eyes full at once of eagerness and of apprehension.
-
-How much she had heard I do not pretend to know. Perhaps some of
-Merriam's unprofessorial profanity, possibly the Mayor's triumphant
-irony, certainly Rockwell's shout, "Catch him!" and the fall. Doubtless
-the silence after that thud had been too much for her self-control.
-
-The Mayor's rueful gaze travelling past Merriam also rested on Mollie
-June. A light came into his eyes. He drew himself up.
-
-"Come in, Mrs. Norman," he said. "Your _husband_"--with a significant
-emphasis on the word--"has been giving a demonstration of his athletic
-prowess. He is indeed the Boy Senator and a suitable mate for a woman
-as young and pretty as yourself."
-
-He paid no attention to Merriam's angry and threatening glance but
-turned to Rockwell.
-
-"Mr. Rockwell," he said, "I think you'd better give me that Ordinance
-after all."
-
-Rockwell spoke in a low tone to Merriam:
-
-"Get her out!"
-
-The Mayor had no objection to that. The older men watched while Merriam
-walked rapidly across the room to Mollie June.
-
-"You'd better go into the other room again, dear," he said.
-
-But Mollie June's eyes were bright and her colour high and her white
-shoulders very straight.
-
-"No!" she said.
-
-"You really will oblige us greatly, Mrs. Norman," said the Mayor, "if
-you will withdraw for a moment longer."
-
-"No!" said Mollie June. "This is my room. I have a right to be here.
-And I don't like scuffling."
-
-She cast a disdainful glance at their crumpled shirts and dusty
-trousers. And, womanlike, she sought a diversion.
-
-"What a mess you are in!" she cried. "Mr.--George,--get the whisk broom
-from the bedroom there!"
-
-It was an almost haughty command. And Merriam rejoiced to obey this new
-mistress of the situation. He darted into the bedroom.
-
-The two older men looked at each other. Rockwell was content: time was
-passing. When the Mayor started to speak he forestalled him.
-
-"She's really right," he said. "You can't leave like this. And some
-one might come in."
-
-Merriam was back with the whisk broom.
-
-"Come under the light," ordered Mollie June, addressing the Mayor.
-
-That dignitary reluctantly advanced.
-
-"Turn around. Now, George, brush him."
-
-Merriam sought diligently to remove the ashes from the Mayor's garments.
-It required vigorous work, for the dust was rubbed deeply into the
-cloth. Mollie June superintended closely. The Mayor had to turn about
-several times and raise an arm and then the other arm. He could not
-make much progress in the regaining of his dignity; and he, no less than
-Rockwell, was conscious of the fleeing moments. But, glancing again and
-again at Mollie June, girlishly imperious and intent, he could not as
-yet muster his brutality for what he saw the next move in his game must
-be. Rockwell waited serenely in the background, the Ordinance in his
-hand.
-
-At last the Mayor's broadcloth was fairly presentable. Nothing could be
-done, of course, with his shirt front.
-
-"Now, George," said Mollie June, "it's your turn. Give me the broom."
-
-"No, no!"
-
-"_Give me the broom!_" She took it from his hand. "Turn around!"
-
-And with her own hands and in the manner of wifely solicitude she began
-to dust his collar and lapels.
-
-This was not unpleasant for Merriam, but it prompted the Mayor to take
-his cue. As he watched his eyes hardened, and in a moment he said:
-
-"You take good care of your _husband_, don't you, Mrs. Norman?"
-
-"I try to," said Mollie June rather pertly, dusting away. Evidently she
-had not heard enough to know that Merriam had been found out.
-
-"It must be pleasant," said the Mayor, "to have such a nice _young_
-husband."
-
-Mollie June stopped her work and looked at him in sudden alarm.
-
-"What do you mean?" she said.
-
-Rockwell stepped forward and caught her arm:
-
-"Let me lead you into the next room, Mrs. Norman. You must let us talk
-with the Mayor."
-
-"No!" she cried, snatching her arm away, and turning eyes of angry
-innocence on Mayor Black, "What do you mean?"
-
-"I mean," he said, with smiling suavity--he was not to be daunted now,
-and, short of violence there was no way of stopping him,--"that you are
-a young woman. This gentleman--whose name I do not have the honour of
-knowing--is also young, and rather handsome. The Senator, of course, is
-getting old. I find you two alone in your husband's rooms, your husband
-having been tricked away. You can hardly expect me to believe that you
-mistook him for your husband. You display no dislike for his person. I
-draw my own conclusions. Every one in Chicago will draw the same
-conclusions if this interesting situation, quite worthy of Boccaccio,
-should become known. That's why I think"--he turned suddenly to
-Rockwell--"that you'd better give me the Ordinance after all."
-
-Mollie June's cheeks were blazing. Merriam's also; he could not look at
-her. But Rockwell pulled his watch from his pocket.
-
-"It is now two minutes past nine," he said. "The Ordinance has become
-law. You can have it now, Mr. Mayor." He held out the document.
-
-The Mayor snatched it.
-
-"It's not legal!" he cried. "And it won't stand. I can prove that I was
-prevented by foul means--by foul means," he repeated, "from exercising
-my charter right of veto. I'll take out an injunction, and I'll fight
-it to the Supreme Court. And in the process all Chicago--the whole
-United States--shall be entertained with the piquant story of these
-young people"--he waved a hand towards Merriam and Mollie June,--"aided
-and abetted by Mr. Reformer Rockwell. I'll ruin them, and you and your
-League, whatever else comes of it. Oh, you're a clever lot, you--you
-reformers!"
-
-He paused out of breath. Then, dramatically, for he was always
-self-conscious and inclined to pose:
-
-"Madame and gentlemen!"--but the effectiveness of his bow was somewhat
-marred by the sorry state of his shirt front--"I wish you a very good
-evening!"
-
-But Rockwell was before him with his back to the hall door.
-
-"You've forgotten your hat, Mayor," he said.
-
-(In fact, his tall hat still stood on the writing table where he had set
-it down before he spread out the Ordinance there to write his veto.)
-
-"Damn my hat! Let me go!"
-
-"Presently, presently. I still think you'd better sign the Ordinance."
-
-"Do you mean to knock me down again?"
-
-"I'd like nothing better, you--cad!" cried Merriam, who had stood
-bursting with outrage a minute longer than he could endure.
-
-The Mayor almost jumped at the savage sincerity of this threat in his
-rear. Rockwell smiled at the startled look on his face, but he spoke
-quietly:
-
-"No violence. I hope to convince you that it would be to your best
-interests to sign it. Since it has become a law anyway."
-
-"Never!" cried the Mayor. "Do you think I would be a traitor to--to--my
-party? And I mean to get even with this gang, whatever else I do!"
-
-But the next instant he jumped indeed. A new voice spoke--a woman's.
-
-"Mayor Black," it said, "you're a fool!"
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER IX*
-
- *AUNT MARY*
-
-
-All four of the actors in the little scene turned, and Mollie June
-uttered an exclamation:
-
-"Aunt Mary!"
-
-In the doorway from which Rockwell had emerged a few minutes earlier
-stood the thin, pale, elderly woman whom Merriam had seen with Mollie
-June in the Peacock Cabaret. She wore a black evening gown, rather too
-heavily overlaid with jet, was tall and very erect, and had streaked
-gray hair, a Roman nose, and a firm mouth. The effect as she stood
-there, framed in the door, was decidedly striking--sibylline.
-
-Mollie June ran to her.
-
-"Oh, Aunt Mary!" she cried.
-
-Merriam was afraid that Mollie June would burst into tears. Very
-possibly she would have liked to do so, but Aunt Mary gave her no
-opportunity.
-
-"Lock the door, Mr. Rockwell," she said, putting an arm about Mollie
-June's waist. Her tone and manner were vigorous and dominant.
-
-"Good evening, Mr. Black," she continued, while Rockwell hastened to
-obey her. And to Merriam: "Good evening, Mr.--Wilson. Now I think we
-had better all sit down and talk it over."
-
-"I can't," said the Mayor. "I'm late for the Council meeting already.
-I've been shamefully tricked, Miss Norman."
-
-"I think you have," returned Aunt Mary, releasing Mollie June and
-advancing a step or two into the room. "But that's the very reason why
-you need to consider your position at once. You're in a mess. So are
-we. Perhaps we can help each other out. The Council can wait. 'Phone
-them that you've been detained. They can go ahead, I suppose. Really,
-Mr. Black, I see a point or two in this business that I think will
-interest you."
-
-Mayor Black met Mary Norman's direct, purposeful gaze. He was impressed
-by her air of command and intelligence. He recalled gossip to the
-effect that it was really she who ran George Norman's campaigns, that
-she even wrote some of his speeches.
-
-"Very well," he said, "I'll stay ten minutes. Never mind 'phoning."
-
-"Good," said Aunt Mary. "There are seats for all of us, I believe.
-Take that one, Mayor."
-
-She indicated the large armchair with the rose-coloured tapestry in
-which Mollie June had been ensconced half an hour before, and laid her
-own hand on the back of the smaller one close by in which Merriam had
-sat.
-
-Then she turned to Mollie June:
-
-"Do you wish to leave us, dear, or to stay?"
-
-"I'll stay!" said Mollie June. Her colour was still high, and the
-glance she threw in the Mayor's direction was distinctly hostile, but
-she had recovered her self-control. We shall be able to forgive young
-Merriam a throb of admiration at her spirit.
-
-"Very well," said Aunt Mary. "Sit over there, then. Mr.--Wilson," she
-added, to Merriam, "on that table yonder you will find a humidor. Pass
-the cigars, please. And pick up that ash stand and set it here by the
-Mayor."
-
-She and the Mayor and Mollie June sat down. Rockwell remained standing.
-Merriam, though somewhat confused at having turned from Norman into
-Wilson, hastened to do as he was bid. He picked up the ash stand,
-straightening the box of matches into place, and brought it and set it
-by the Mayor's chair. Then he got the humidor, opened its heavy lid,
-and passed the gold-banded perfectos therein to the Mayor and to
-Rockwell.
-
-"Are you leaving me out, young man?" demanded Aunt Mary, who had watched
-him in appraising silence.
-
-Merriam turned to her with the humidor, hesitating.
-
-"There don't seem to be any cigarettes," he said.
-
-"I have some in my pocket."
-
-But Aunt Mary leaned forward and took from the humidor a package of
-"little cigars" that had been slipped in at one end of the box of
-perfectos.
-
-"No cigarettes for me," she said. "I smoke when I'm with men so as to
-be one of them. A cigarette leaves me a woman. A cigar, even one of
-these little ones, makes a man of me. Give me a match, please."
-
-With what seemed to himself amazing self-control, Merriam took a match
-from the ash stand, struck it, and would have held the light for her.
-But Aunt Mary took it from him and, looking all the while amazingly like
-his own mother, deliberately and efficiently ignited the "little cigar."
-
-Then she looked up quizzically at Merriam, blew out the match, handed it
-to him, and said, "Sit down, Mr. Wilson."
-
-Having seated himself, Merriam found Aunt Mary looking intently at the
-Mayor, who was smoking and returning her gaze.
-
-But Rockwell broke in:
-
-"How much do you know, Miss Norman? And how do you know it?"
-
-"As to how I know it," said Aunt Mary, "that's my own business for the
-present. Not because there need be any secret about it, but because we
-haven't time for explanations." She puffed at her little cigar. "As to
-how much I know, I believe I understand the whole affair--except how
-Mrs. Norman came into it." She looked at Rockwell.
-
-That gentleman did not reply. Merriam broke the silence:
-
-"I sent for her."
-
-He said it very well--not defiantly, but as a plain, necessary statement
-of fact.
-
-Aunt Mary turned in her chair to look at him.
-
-"Ah!" she said.
-
-He felt that he was colouring under her gaze. Perhaps that colour
-answered her obvious next question as to why he had done so. She did
-not ask that question, but turned back to the Mayor:
-
-"I overheard a little of your conversation from the doorway before I
-spoke. Mr. Rockwell was saying he thought that, as things stand now, it
-would be best for you to sign the Ordinance. I think so too."
-
-The Mayor would have interrupted, but she waved her little cigar at him.
-
-"You can, of course," she continued, "explain that you were tricked.
-But how much would that help you with Mr. Crockett or any of his cronies
-and allies? They would only think the worse of you and throw you over
-the more quickly. A man of your age and standing cannot afford to be
-tricked. If he is, he had better conceal the fact. And how about the
-people of Chicago, before whom you come up for reelection in the fall?
-Will their sympathies be with you or with the persons who tricked you
-into giving them the Ordinance they wanted? The American people love a
-clever trick. And a trick is clever if it succeeds. As for the
-illegality, they won't care a picayune for that. You said you would
-fight it in the courts. Well, you might. But it would be a long fight.
-You yourself mentioned the Supreme Court. And in the meantime it is a
-law and goes into effect at once. Unless, of course, you take out an
-injunction. And if you do that, you will make yourself so unpopular
-that you can never even be nominated again. Let us suppose it goes into
-effect. Then by the time your fight was won, if you won it, the new
-conditions would be established, and nobody would dare try to unscramble
-the eggs. The Council would simply have to pass it over again, and
-you--or your successor, rather, for you would be out by then--would
-promptly sign it. No, my friend, there is no road for you in that
-direction. You would lose out both ways--with the bosses, who would
-have no more use for a man who had allowed himself to be fooled at a
-critical juncture, and with the people. Your only chance--unless you
-wish to retire quickly and ignominiously to private life--is to cut
-loose from the bosses and throw in your lot with the people--sign the
-Ordinance, claim the credit, join forces with Rockwell here, defy
-Crockett, and come out as the people's champion!"
-
-The Mayor was not smoking. He was looking hard at Aunt Mary, as one man
-looks at another. (Her little cigar had effected that.) There was
-aroused interest in his eyes.
-
-"Wouldn't you rather like to go into politics as your own boss for a
-change?" Aunt Mary asked. "Rather than as one miserable little cog in a
-big, dirty machine?"
-
-The Mayor flushed a little and took refuge behind a puff of smoke.
-
-"Perhaps I would," he said. Then, suddenly: "How about Senator Norman?
-Do I defy him too?"
-
-"Not at all," said Aunt Mary. "He also will go over to the people."
-
-"Can you answer for him?"
-
-"I think I can. He will be forced to do so in the same way you are. He
-too has been victimised."
-
-She leaned forward and deposited her small cigar, of which she had
-really smoked very little, in the ash tray. Sitting erect, she folded
-her hands in her lap and became forthwith a woman again--a sedate,
-almost prim, elderly woman.
-
-"That," she explained simply, "is the source of my interest in this
-matter. I like you, Mayor Black, because you have some of the
-courtliness of the old school in your manner. I should be sorry to see
-you in misfortune. But I care much more, naturally, for my brother,
-George Norman, and more still for the name of Norman"--from her tone she
-might have referred to the Deity,--"which has been an honourable name in
-this country for eight generations, and which George, with his spoils
-politics and his dissipations, is compromising. I have long wanted him
-to break with his present associates, to live straight, and to become a
-real leader, as the Normans were in New York State in the early years of
-the last century. I have tried again and again to get him to do so.
-Over and over he has promised me he would. But he is weak. He has
-never done it. Now he will have to do it!"
-
-All the members of the little group looked with some admiration, I
-fancy, at Aunt Mary, sitting straight, an incarnation of aristocratic,
-elderly femininity, in her chair. Where a moment or two before she had
-been an unsexed modern, she looked now like an old family portrait.
-
-Rockwell broke the momentary silence:
-
-"Miss Norman has presented, so much better than I could have done, the
-argument which I tried to suggest to Mr. Black."
-
-It was probably unfortunate that Rockwell had recalled attention to
-himself. The Mayor glanced at him with animosity, and at the silent
-Merriam, and over at Mollie June, listening eagerly in the background.
-Then at Aunt Mary again. He leaned back, pulling at his cigar, thinking
-hard.
-
-In the silence a slight noise became audible from the bedroom behind
-Aunt Mary--a word or two of whispering and then a sound as if some one
-tiptoeing had stumbled a little.
-
-The Mayor jumped to his feet.
-
-"Who's there?" he cried, pointing.
-
-For an instant Aunt Mary was out of countenance. But only for an
-instant. Then, without rising or turning her head, she called:
-
-"Come in, Alicia."
-
-A moment's silence. Then a laugh, of a premeditated sweetness which
-Merriam remembered, and Alicia Wayward stood in the doorway.
-
-The Mayor and Merriam rose. Mollie June, too, jumped up. Only Aunt
-Mary remained calmly seated.
-
-After a second's pause in the effective framing of the door, Alicia
-advanced with an air of eager pleasure and held out her hand to the
-Mayor.
-
-"Good evening, Mr. Black."
-
-The Mayor was a very susceptible male where women like Alicia were
-concerned. He took her hand.
-
-"Good evening, Miss Wayward." But, still holding the hand, he looked
-steadily at her and asked, "Who else is in there?"
-
-"Who else?" repeated Alicia, raising her pretty dark eyebrows.
-
-"Or were you whispering to yourself?" pursued the Mayor.
-
-Alicia laughed and drew her hand away. "It's only Father Murray."
-Then, raising her voice a little: "You'll have to come in, Father
-Murray, to save my reputation. This is really all of us," she added, as
-the priest rather sheepishly presented himself. "You can search the
-room if you like."
-
-She smiled at him in the manner which novelists commonly describe as
-roguish.
-
-The Mayor smiled back at her, but he turned to the latest arrival.
-
-"Were you in this plot, too, Father Murray?"
-
-"Indeed he was," Alicia answered for him. "He didn't quite approve of
-it at first. But we quite easily converted him. So, you see, it can't
-be so black as it first seemed to you, Mr. Mayor. And really," she
-hurried on, "you ought to do as Miss Norman suggests. It's a splendid
-chance for you. To really be a--a Man, you know! And I can help."
-
-"How can you help?" asked the Mayor.
-
-"I am quite sure," said Alicia, "that I can get my father to subscribe
-quite a lot of money--a hundred thousand dollars, say--to your campaign
-fund--yours and Senator Norman's and the Reform League's."
-
-"Is Mr. Wayward so keen on reform? I should think he had had nearly
-enough of it. They've practically put him out of business, these
-reformers."
-
-"He's rather keen on me, you know," said Alicia. "And he likes Mollie
-June and Miss Norman and George Norman and----"
-
-"Father Murray, I suppose," interrupted the Mayor, "and anybody else you
-can think of. You mean you can get it out of him." But his
-appreciative smile made a compliment of the accusation.
-
-Alicia only raised her eyebrows again.
-
-Aunt Mary rose and took the reins of business into her own hands once
-more.
-
-"I should be willing to subscribe something, too, out of my own income,"
-she said. "And the League can raise plenty of money. You won't lack
-for funds. Here's my proposition, Mr. Black. You lie low and keep
-still till noon to-morrow. Don't go to the Council meeting at all.
-Keep the Ordinance in your own possession. Refuse to see any one. See
-what the papers say in the morning. And wait for a message from George
-Norman. If by noon to-morrow he telephones you that he will go with
-you, will you go over to the League, sign the Ordinance, break with
-Crockett and the rest of them, and appeal to the people on your own?"
-
-The Mayor looked from Aunt Mary to Alicia's appealing and admiring eyes
-and back at Aunt Mary. He avoided Rockwell and Merriam and Mollie June.
-
-"That's fair enough," he said. "I'll do that." Then: "You know where
-Norman is, do you?"
-
-"Yes," said Aunt Mary. It was plain, however, that she did not intend
-to communicate the information.
-
-"And what becomes of this young gentleman?" The Mayor looked at
-Merriam.
-
-"He will disappear where he came from."
-
-"Well, well," said the Mayor genially, "it has been a very stimulating
-evening. Rather like a play. You have certainly put me in a box. But
-I'll admit I'm interested in your suggestion, Miss Norman. I'll think
-it over carefully. Now I believe I'll call a taxi."
-
-"Let me," said Rockwell, and he stepped to the telephone.
-
-The Mayor addressed himself to Merriam:
-
-"Will you bring me my hat, Mr.--Wilson?"
-
-Merriam was near the writing table on which the hat stood. He picked it
-up and brought it.
-
-"The resemblance is marvellously close," said the Mayor, studying his
-face. "And you did your part very well, young man. But let me advise
-you to keep away from the neighbourhood of Senator Norman. You might
-get into serious trouble."
-
-Merriam did not reply or smile but handed him the hat.
-
-"There's a taxi ready," said Rockwell, turning from the telephone into
-which he had been speaking.
-
-"Thank you," said the Mayor. He looked at Mollie June, who stood some
-distance from him:
-
-"I hope you will forgive me, Mrs. Norman, for my--rudeness earlier this
-evening. I am afraid I was too angry then to know what I was saying."
-
-Like Merriam, Mollie June did not answer or smile. Possibly she was
-imitating his demeanour. But she bowed slightly.
-
-"Really," interjected Alicia, "Mollie June had never seen Mr.--Mr.
-Wilson since before she was married until five minutes before you came
-in."
-
-"Quite so. Of course," said the Mayor. He held out his hand to Aunt
-Mary. "You are a wonderful woman, Miss Norman."
-
-"George shall telephone before noon," she replied, shaking hands like a
-man.
-
-"Till then at least you can depend on me."
-
-He turned to Alicia.
-
-Alicia kept his hand a long minute. "We have always liked you, Mr.
-Black--we women," she said. "In your new role we shall admire you so
-much!"
-
-"I would do much to win your admiration," returned the Mayor, somewhat
-guardedly gallant. "Good night, Father Murray. Good night,
-Rockwell--you precious reformer! Good night, Mr. Wilson. That's only a
-stage name, isn't it? Well, good night, all!"
-
-The suave politician bowed himself out.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER X*
-
- *A SENATOR MISSING*
-
-
-The members of the group that remained looked at one another. Alicia
-dropped into a chair.
-
-"Whew!" she said.
-
-Father Murray crossed quickly from the doorway, where he had stood
-silent ever since his shamefaced entrance, to Aunt Mary's side.
-
-"Wonderful, Miss Norman!" he cried.
-
-Aunt Mary smiled at him--her first smile in that scene. "Thank you,
-Arthur," she said.
-
-But she added instantly to Rockwell:
-
-"See if George is _there_. Telephone. He must be by now. Then you and
-Arthur must take a taxi and go after him and bring him back here. The
-number is Harrison 3731."
-
-Rockwell turned back to the telephone.
-
-Merriam walked over to Mollie June and put his hands on the back of the
-chair in which she had been sitting prior to the entrance of Alicia.
-
-"Hadn't you better sit down?" he said.
-
-"Yes, if you'll move it up a little." She wanted to be closer to the
-rest of the group.
-
-He pushed the chair forward, and she sat and smiled up at him:
-
-"Thank you!"
-
-A woman's eyes are never so appealingly beautiful as in a quick upward
-glance. Merriam fell suddenly more deeply in love with her than he had
-ever been. And he was for the moment very happy. There was something
-between them, something very slight, as tenuous and as innocent as youth
-itself, but existent and precious.
-
-Rockwell turned from the telephone.
-
-"He's not _there_," he said, "and he's not been there."
-
-(There was a tacit conspiracy among them, on account of Mollie June, not
-to refer more definitely to George's destination.)
-
-"Not!" exclaimed Aunt Mary. Like the men, she was still standing. She
-looked at Alicia. "The driver was instructed to go directly there?"
-
-"Yes," said Alicia. Then she added in a low tone:
-
-"The driver was Simpson."
-
-"Simpson!" Aunt Mary echoed. "That's dangerous. Why didn't you tell me
-that before?"
-
-The reader will have guessed the explanation of Aunt Mary's presence,
-and Alicia's and Father Murray's, and I insert it here only to gratify
-his sense of acumen: that Alicia and Murray, "keeping an eye on" Mollie
-June and Aunt Mary in accordance with Rockwell's plan, in the hotel
-lobby, had witnessed the former's unexpected departure in response to
-Merriam's summons, and had joined Miss Norman to find out what had
-happened; and that Aunt Mary, who was more than a match for both of
-them, especially in their alarm over Mollie June's being dragged into
-the affair, had obtained first an inkling and presently the whole story
-of the plot, and had insisted on coming upstairs, and had entered
-through the bedroom.
-
-Alicia did not reply to Aunt Mary's question. Indeed she hardly had time
-to do so, for Aunt Mary followed it quickly with another of a more
-practical character:
-
-"What time is it?"
-
-Merriam was the most prompt in producing his watch. "Ten o'clock," he
-said.
-
-"And it was barely eight when George left the hotel. How long should it
-have taken to get there?"
-
-"Less than half an hour," said Rockwell.
-
-"Are you sure he's not there? They might have lied to you."
-
-"They might. But I didn't think so."
-
-"Mr. Rockwell and I can go and see," volunteered Father Murray, who
-seemed very eager to be helpful.
-
-While Aunt Mary was considering this suggestion, Merriam had an idea.
-
-"My voice is very like Senator Norman's?" he asked.
-
-"Yes, it is," said Aunt Mary.
-
-"Then let me telephone."
-
-"Good!" cried Rockwell. "From the bedroom." This was, of course, to
-spare Mollie June.
-
-"Very well," said Aunt Mary.
-
-The two men stepped into George Norman's bedroom--the one into which
-Mollie June had earlier retreated. As they did so, Aunt Mary's eyes
-followed Merriam with the appraising look which they had held whenever
-she regarded him throughout the evening.
-
-Rockwell shut the door.
-
-"Harrison 3731," he said. "Say, 'This is George Norman,' and ask for
-'Jennie.'"
-
-The telephone was on the night table. Merriam sat down on the edge of
-the bed and raised the instrument. He realised that he had not the
-slightest idea what to expect. Rockwell sat beside him, close enough to
-hear what should come through the receiver.
-
-In a moment Merriam had the connection. A not unmusical voice said:
-"Who is it, please?"
-
-"This is George Norman. Is Jennie there?"
-
-"Why, Georgie, boy! Don't you know me? You always do. And you ought
-to!" A tender little laugh followed, which thrilled Merriam in spite of
-himself.
-
-"I didn't at first," he answered and stopped at a loss.
-
-Rockwell put his mouth close to Merriam's ear and formed a tunnel from
-the one orifice to the other with his hands. "Can I see you to-night,
-dearie?" he prompted.
-
-"Can I see you to-night, dearie?" Merriam obediently repeated.
-
-"Oh, can you come? Goodie! But"--the unmistakably loving voice was
-lowered--"you must be careful, Georgie."
-
-"Careful?" Merriam queried cautiously.
-
-"Yes. Some one thinks you're here already."
-
-"Who?"
-
-"I don't know. Some man. He wouldn't tell me who he was. He called up
-just a minute ago. He was awfully sure you were here. He wouldn't
-believe me when I said you weren't. Is it dangerous?" There was a
-touching note of anxiety in Jennie's voice.
-
-"I guess not."
-
-"Can you come anyway?" eagerly.
-
-"I'm not sure. Don't wait for me long. I'll come within an hour if I
-can get away."
-
-"You'll telephone again?"
-
-"Yes--if I can."
-
-"Georgie, boy!" There followed a little sound of lips moved in a
-certain way--unmistakably a kiss.
-
-John Merriam played up with an effectiveness that surprised himself very
-much.
-
-"Dearie!" he whispered tenderly into the telephone, "good night!"--and
-abruptly hung up.
-
-"You don't need much prompting!" exclaimed Rockwell, rising. "Well, she
-didn't lie to me."
-
-"No," Merriam assented confusedly. Whatever else he had anticipated
-from Norman's mistress, the disreputable manicurist, it had not been
-that note of sincere affection or that he himself would be for an
-instant carried off his feet. As he automatically followed Rockwell,
-who made for the sitting room, he was unwillingly conscious of a new
-charity for George Norman.
-
-"He's not there," Rockwell reported. "And he hasn't been."
-
-"Sure?" Aunt Mary looked at Merriam.
-
-Our hero nodded. He could not speak. And he dared not look at Mollie
-June, of whose bright eyes fixed on his face he was nevertheless acutely
-aware.
-
-In a moment, however, it was of Aunt Mary's gaze that he was sensible.
-She seemed to read him through. He thought, ridiculously, that that
-momentary telephonic tenderness could not be hid from her.
-
-But when she spoke her question both relieved and startled him.
-
-"At what hour in the morning does your train go?"
-
-"It goes to-night. At 2:00 A.M."
-
-"If George is back here by then, it does," said Aunt Mary. "If not, you
-stay."
-
-"But I _must_ go to-night," cried Merriam, suddenly awakened to
-realities and feeling as though the curtain had descended abruptly on
-some mad combination of melodrama and farce. "I must meet my classes in
-the morning!"
-
-Aunt Mary, who must have sat down while the two men were telephoning,
-rose and walked up to Merriam.
-
-"Mr. Merriam," she said, "you more than any one else are responsible for
-the present situation--because of your sending for Mrs. Norman. I don't
-ask why you did that, but you did it. If you hadn't stepped outside
-your part that way, I verily believe, when I look at you, that the trick
-could have been played as Mr. Rockwell planned it. The Mayor would not
-have seen Crockett downstairs. I don't believe he would have recognised
-you. He would have signed the Ordinance and gone away committed and
-ignorant of the deception. Now he's only half committed, and he has
-recognised you as an impostor. If he doesn't hear from George Norman by
-noon to-morrow as I promised, if he turns against us and tells his
-story, he can ruin us--all." (She said "all," but she glanced at Mollie
-June.) "And now we don't know where George is. As soon as we find him,
-you can go. But Mayor Black must get a message from Senator Norman
-before noon to-morrow--from the true one or the false one! Do you see?
-Until we find George you must stay."
-
-"Yes, by Jove!" cried Rockwell. "You can't back out now. You can
-telegraph to--where is it?"
-
-"Riceville," said Alicia, who was leaning excitedly forward in her
-chair. "Oh, you will!"
-
-Merriam looked at Alicia. The same combination of appeal and admiration
-in her eyes which he had seen her work a few minutes before on the Mayor
-did not move him.
-
-His eyes travelled to the face of Mollie June. She was not leaning
-forward, but sat erect on the edge of her chair. There was a flush of
-excitement--was it eagerness?--on her cheeks. Unwillingly he compared
-her with the warm seductiveness of the voice on the telephone. She was
-not like that,--though perhaps she could be. But she was radiantly
-bright and pure, a girl, a woman, to be worshipped--and protected from
-all evil. He remembered how he had wished to help her. He had said he
-would be always ready. Now was his chance. And he desired passionately
-to expiate his involuntary infidelity of feeling and tone over the
-telephone. He rose superior to the cares, the duties, of a "professor,"
-even before she spoke.
-
-"Oh, please--Mr. Merriam," she said.
-
-Merriam smiled at her, but looked back at Aunt Mary.
-
-"You think it very necessary?" he asked--not because he had not decided
-but to avoid any shadow of compromising Mollie June by seeming to yield
-directly to her.
-
-"I do," said Aunt Mary.
-
-"Then of course I'll stay," said Merriam.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XI*
-
- *CONFESSIONS OF WAITER NO. 73*
-
-
-From a sleep which had been heavy but was becoming restless and
-dreamful, Merriam was awakened about seven o'clock the next morning by a
-knocking at his door. He leaned over and pulled the little chain of the
-night lamp, and as the light glowed asked, "Who is it?"
-
-"Rockwell," came the answer.
-
-By a rather athletic bit of stretching Merriam was able to turn the key
-in his lock without getting out of bed. "Come in," he called.
-
-Rockwell entered, closed the door behind him, and stood looking down at
-Merriam, who had lain back on his pillow.
-
-"Slept well?" he asked.
-
-"Like a football player," laughed Merriam, somehow ashamed of this fact.
-
-"Feeling fit?"
-
-"Certainly. Always feel fit."
-
-For a moment longer Rockwell looked, with perhaps a touch of an older
-man's envy of the unconscionable imperturbability of youthful health.
-Then he said:
-
-"Well, I have news."
-
-Merriam waited.
-
-"About half an hour ago I called up 'Jennie' again. When I said I was a
-friend of Norman's, she admitted he was there. By asking a good many
-questions I learned that he turned up about two o'clock this morning and
-that he was very drunk. I judge he's having a touch of D.T. 'Jennie'
-was evidently rather disgusted at his arriving so late and in that
-condition--after your affectionate tone earlier in the evening, you
-know."
-
-Merriam evaded this thrust with a question:
-
-"Where can he have been in the meantime?"
-
-"That is a point on which we shall have to seek information from our
-friend Simpson. Since telephoning I have seen Miss Norman, and we have
-agreed to order breakfast for all of us in Senator Norman's rooms with
-Simpson to serve us. He goes on duty again at seven o'clock, and I have
-asked that he be sent here as soon as he reports to take a breakfast
-order."
-
-"Why here?"
-
-"Well, he will be more likely to talk freely to you and me alone than to
-you and me and Miss Norman--to say nothing of Mrs. Norman. And, if he
-has played some trick on us, he might refuse to go to Senator Norman's
-suite, but this room will mean nothing to him. Of course, he may not
-show up at all this morning. Ah, there he is, I hope!"
-
-A vigorous knock had sounded at the door. It proved, however, to be
-only a porter with Merriam's suit case and hand bag, for which the
-industrious Rockwell had also sent so early that morning to the more
-modest hotel at which Merriam had been registered.
-
-"Now I can dress," said Merriam. "I was afraid I should have to turn
-waiter myself, having only evening clothes to put on."
-
-"Yes, get into your things," said Rockwell, "and let me think some more.
-This conspiracy business takes a lot more thinking than mere Reform!"
-
-Merriam hurried through a bath--a tubful of hot water early in the
-morning was so unwonted a luxury to a citizen of Riceville that he could
-not bring himself to forego it even on this occasion--and began to dress
-carefully, realising with pleasant excitement that he was to have
-breakfast with Mollie June.
-
-He had no more than got into his trousers when another knock came at the
-door.
-
-Rockwell motioned to Merriam to step into the bathroom and himself went
-to the door. "Come in," he said and opened it, keeping behind it.
-
-Sure enough, Simpson stepped into the room with his napkin and order
-pad.
-
-Rockwell promptly closed the door behind him, locked it, and stood with
-his back against it. He also pushed the switch for the center
-chandelier--for only the dim night lamp had been on.
-
-In the sudden light Simpson whirled with a startled and most
-unprofessional agility to face Rockwell.
-
-"Good morning, Simpson."
-
-The waiter fairly moistened his lips before he could answer.
-
-"Good morning, Mr. Rockwell."
-
-The man's face was certainly haggard. His eyes even were a trifle
-bloodshot. It was clear he had had a strange night. But after a moment
-of hostile confrontation the professional impassivity of a waiter--which
-is perhaps the ultimate perfection of _sang froid_--descended about him
-like a cloak and mask.
-
-"I was sent to this room--Mr. Wilson's room, I understood--to take a
-breakfast order."
-
-"Right, Simpson!" cried Merriam cheerily, emerging from the bathroom in
-his shirt sleeves.
-
-For a moment the human gleamed again through the eyes of the
-functionary.
-
-"Are you Mr. Wilson?" he asked. His manner was perfect servility, but
-there was mockery and malice in the tone.
-
-"Yes, Simpson," said Merriam. "This morning I am Mr. Wilson. I have
-read of an English duke who puts on a new pair of trousers each morning.
-But I go him one better. I put on an entire new personality each
-morning."
-
-"Very good, sir," was the ironical, stage-butler reply to this sally.
-"The grapefruit is very good this morning. Will you have some?"
-
-Merriam glanced at Rockwell.
-
-"Very likely we'll have some," said the latter, "but we want something
-else first."
-
-"Before the grapefruit?" inquired Simpson.
-
-"Yes, before the grapefruit," said Rockwell, a trifle sharply. "And
-what we propose to have before the grapefruit is a bit of talk with you,
-Mr. Simpson--about last night. Do you care to sit down?" He pointed to
-a chair.
-
-Simpson was undoubtedly agitated, but he controlled himself excellently.
-He even lifted his eyebrows:
-
-"I hope I know my place, sir."
-
-He raised his pad and wrote on it.
-
-"Grapefruit," he said with insolent suavity. "For two? And then what?
-We have some excellent ham."
-
-"Damn your ham!" cried Rockwell. He snatched the man's pad and threw it
-on the floor. "Sit down in that chair and drop this damned pose! We're
-going to talk to you man to man."
-
-But Simpson only stooped and picked up his pad.
-
-"Mr. Rockwell," he said, "I know my place. It is a very humble one. It
-is to take orders--for meals, to be served in this hotel. So long as
-that is what you want I am yours to command. But"--the American citizen
-stood up in him; no European waiter could have said it--"outside of that
-I am my own master as much as you are. When you call me 'Mr. Simpson'
-and tell me to sit down, I don't have to do it. And I don't have to
-talk of my personal affairs unless I choose, any more than any one
-else!"
-
-For an instant he glared at Rockwell as one angry man at another, his
-equal. Then he quietly became the waiter again. He lifted his pad and
-poised his pencil:
-
-"Shall we say some ham?"
-
-Rockwell looked at him a moment longer. Then he laughed: "Ham let it
-be!"
-
-"Yes, sir," said Simpson, deferentially writing. "And some baked
-potatoes, perhaps? And coffee?"
-
-"Yes," said Rockwell, "and the telephone book. Hand me the telephone
-book, please."
-
-Simpson hesitated, but this was clearly within the line of his duties.
-
-"Yes, sir," he said, and stepped towards the stand on which the book
-lay.
-
-"Wait!" said Rockwell. "Perhaps it isn't necessary. I think you can
-tell me the number I want."
-
-He paused a moment to let this sink in. Then:
-
-"Miss Alicia Wayward's number. I see I shall have to bring her here.
-You see," he explained pleasantly, "I have locked the door. There are
-two of us against you."
-
-He indicated Merriam, who still stood in the bathroom door, following
-the progress of the interview with excited interest.
-
-"We are going to keep you here, not by any authority that we as guests
-of this hotel may have over you--as you have very well pointed out, we
-have none in such a matter,--but by simple force, till Miss Wayward can
-come down. We shall see whether she can make you talk."
-
-To Merriam's astonishment the waiter, with a sound somewhere between a
-sigh and a groan, sank into the chair which he had thus far so
-pertinaciously refused to take. For a moment he stared at the floor.
-Then he raised his eyes to Rockwell:
-
-"What do you want to know?"
-
-"That's better," said Rockwell, leaving the door and preparing to sit
-down opposite Simpson. "Will you have a cigar?"
-
-Simpson shook his head and repeated his question.
-
-"What do you want?"
-
-Rockwell dropped into his chair and glancing at Merriam pointed to
-another seat. Merriam was too much excited to care to sit down, but he
-came forward and leaned on the back of the chair.
-
-"We want to know about last night, of course," said Rockwell. "At five
-minutes to eight Senator Norman got into the taxi which you were
-driving. At about two o'clock this morning he tumbled into Madame
-Couteau's, delirious with drink. We want the whole story of what
-happened between eight and two."
-
-Simpson sat on the edge of his chair, his hands on his knees. His order
-pad was under one hand, and its flexure showed that he was exerting
-intense pressure. His napkin dangled loosely half off his arm. He was
-looking at the floor again.
-
-He remained in this position for a number of seconds, the other two men
-intently regarding him. Then he straightened up, pushed himself farther
-back in his chair, and looked at Rockwell.
-
-"You shall have it," he said.
-
-For a moment he stared. Then:
-
-"I hate Senator Norman--enough to kill him."
-
-The reader will observe that I use no exclamation points in punctuating
-Simpson's sentence. There were none in his delivery of it. But it was
-the more startling on that account.
-
-"Do you know why?" he unexpectedly demanded.
-
-"No," said Rockwell.
-
-"Five years ago I was butler to Mr. Wayward. The--the-girl you call
-Madame Couteau was the parlour maid there. Her real name is Jennie
-Higgins. I was in love with her, and she had promised to marry me. I
-had a little money saved up. At that time Senator Norman's first wife
-was still alive, who was Mr. Wayward's sister, you know, Miss Wayward's
-aunt. Senator Norman came often to the house. He took a fancy to
-Jennie and turned her head. The fact that she was in his own
-brother-in-law's house made no difference to him. She--went off with
-him--on a lake cruise, in his yacht. When they came back he set her up
-in that flat and got her work as a manicurist. Ever since he has been
-her paramour!"
-
-The odd, old-fashioned word, which Simpson must have gleaned from some
-novel, came out queerly. But it served to express his bitterness as no
-ordinary word could have done.
-
-"That's all. A parlour maid ruined. A butler cheated of his wife.
-It's nothing, of course."
-
-He was looking down again. Neither Rockwell nor Merriam ventured to
-speak. When he raised his eyes there was a gleam in them.
-
-"Last night I had him in my power." (One sensed novels again.) "In my
-taxi, not knowing who I was. I was minded to kill him. You had told me
-to drive him directly to--to Jennie's. Not much! I drove as fast as I
-dared out Michigan Avenue. For a long time he suspected nothing. He
-thought he was on his way to the Mayor's, and that was the right
-direction. But when I turned into Washington Park he got scared. He
-called through the tube to know where in hell I was going. I answered,
-'This is Simpson. You can try jumping, if you like--into hell!' I put
-the machine up to forty miles an hour. He opened the door once, but I
-guess he didn't dare try it. He shut it again. Of course, it was pure
-luck I didn't get stopped for speeding. But I got through Washington
-Park and across the Midway and out into a lonely place at the south end
-of Jackson Park. Then I stopped and got down and opened the door and
-ordered him out."
-
-The man stopped. When he spoke again there was more contempt than
-hatred in his voice.
-
-"The coward. He went down on his knees on the wet road and cried and
-begged me not to hurt him. He said he was sorry, and he didn't know I
-cared so much, and he would make it all right yet. He would give me a
-lot of money and get me up in a business, and I could marry Jennie after
-all, and wouldn't I forgive him and go back to town and have a drink?
-The worm! I could have spit on him. _Senator_ Norman!
-
-"He saved his life all right," he added reflectively. "If he had showed
-fight I would have strangled him and thrown his body in the Lake."
-Simpson shuddered a little. "But you couldn't strangle a crying baby.
-I kicked him once or twice. But what more could I do? He kept begging
-me not to hurt him but to go back to town and have a drink. That gave
-me an idea. I jerked him up and pitched him into the car and drove back
-to a saloon. We sat at a table and drank, and he kept offering me money
-and saying I should marry Jennie. As if I would take his leavings! He
-drank a lot. I only took one or two to steady my nerves--poured out the
-rest. But he drank four or five cocktails. Then we went on in the taxi
-to another saloon and did it again. And then to another. And about
-midnight we ended up at a cheap dance hall on the West Side, and I
-turned him loose among the roughnecks and the women there.
-
-"He was pretty drunk--told everybody who he was and showed his
-money,--and in a few minutes a lot of the girls were around him to get
-the money away from him. Most of the men they were with didn't
-mind--egged them on. Pretty soon he had a dozen couples in the bar with
-him and was paying for drinks all around. But one big foreigner, who
-was with the prettiest girl in the room, was ugly. When Norman, after
-buying a second round of drinks, tried to kiss his girl, he roared out
-at him and knocked him down. But Norman only stumbled up again with his
-lip bleeding and begged his pardon and handed the girl a fifty-dollar
-bill and bought drinks again. And then he got his arm about another
-girl and took her out to dance. It was an hour before I found him
-again. He was sitting on the stairs, with his collar off, crazy
-drunk--seeing things--and all cleaned out as to money.
-
-"I though then he was about ripe for what I wanted. I carried him
-downstairs and put him in the taxi and drove to--Madame Couteau's!
-There I carried him up to her flat and propped him against the door and
-knocked and then waited part way down the stairs. When the door was
-opened he fell in, and I ran downstairs and took my taxi home."
-
-Evidently Simpson had finished his tale. And it had done him good to
-tell it. He was much less agitated than when he began. He looked
-steadily rather than angrily at Rockwell.
-
-"That's the story you wanted," he said. "Of course now you can get me
-fired and blacklisted. It's little I'll care."
-
-Rockwell had let his cigar go out while Simpson talked. Now he lit it
-again with a good deal of deliberation. He was evidently thinking.
-Even Merriam perceived the point that was uppermost in his mind, namely,
-that with Norman still at Jennie's they had need of Simpson's silence
-and would be likely to need his help again. They must try to conciliate
-him and win his loyal support.
-
-"I see no reason why I should do anything like that," Rockwell began,
-referring to Simpson's defiant suggestion. "I can hardly pronounce your
-conduct virtuous. But it was very natural--very excusable. It's lucky
-you did no worse!"
-
-(Merriam had a sudden vision of the horrid predicament they would have
-been in if Norman had actually been murdered in Jackson Park at the very
-time when he was impersonating him at the hotel.)
-
-"Still," continued Rockwell, "I think you made a mistake."
-
-"A mistake!" echoed Simpson.
-
-"Yes.--Do you still love--Miss Higgins?"
-
-"What's that to you?"
-
-"Evidently you do. Why didn't you take his offer--his money, and marry
-her? It would have been the sensible thing to do and the kind thing to
-her. You might be happy after all. Of course, if you're too stern a
-moralist!"
-
-The man's face worked queerly. "It's not that. But she wouldn't have a
-waiter now. And he wouldn't have done it--let her alone."
-
-"Well, perhaps not, as things stood. But he will now. Have you seen
-the morning papers?"
-
-"The papers? No, sir."
-
-"If you'll read them you'll find that Senator Norman has broken with all
-his old life and turned over a new leaf entirely, which he can't turn
-back. You have helped him do it, in fact!"
-
-"What's the idea?" growled Simpson suspiciously.
-
-"Listen, Mr. Simpson."
-
-Rapidly Rockwell sketched the principal events which had taken place at
-the hotel while the waiter was driving his enemy about Chicago:
-Merriam's impersonation, the Mayor's failure to veto the Ordinance in
-time, and the necessity which both the Mayor and Norman were now under
-of breaking with the "interests" and coming out as the candidates of the
-Reform League.
-
-"In that role," he concluded, "George Norman will have to lead a
-strictly virtuous life. It will be the business of his friends and
-backers--my business, for example--to see that he does so. I will
-personally undertake to see that you get the money he promised you. All
-you will have to do is to make it up with Jennie. You may not be able
-or willing to do that right away. But in a few months---- There's no
-reason why you shouldn't be set up in a nice little business of your
-own--a delicatessen or caterer's, or a taxicab firm, or whatever you
-would like--in some other city, with Jennie for your wife. Will you
-think it over?"
-
-Simpson looked at Rockwell and then at Merriam.
-
-"You certainly are as like as two plates," he said irrelevantly to the
-latter.
-
-"Won't you think it over?" returned Merriam, as persuasively as if he
-had been reasoning with some irate patron of the Riceville High School.
-
-"Yes," said Simpson after a bit, "I'll think it over."
-
-"In the meantime," said Rockwell, "you must keep still about all this,
-of course. And we may need your help again--for taxi driving and so
-forth."
-
-"What if I choose to blow the whole thing?"
-
-"In that case you will do more than any one else could to help Norman to
-the thing he will most want--a reconciliation with Crockett and the rest
-of the gang. And he will go on in his old ways--Jennie included."
-
-Rockwell let Simpson digest that for a moment, and then said:
-
-"Well, think it over as you have promised. And now we really do want
-breakfast."
-
-Simpson got to his feet. He straightened the napkin on his arm and
-mechanically enunciated his servile formula:
-
-"Yes, sir."
-
-"And, Simpson!"
-
-"Yes, sir?"
-
-"I will talk with you again this afternoon. Till then, at least, keep
-your mouth shut and think. Think sensibly."
-
-"Very good, sir."
-
-Waiter No. 73 bowed gravely and left the bedroom.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XII*
-
- *GRAPEFRUIT AND TELEGRAMS*
-
-
-When the door closed behind Simpson, Rockwell and Merriam naturally
-looked at each other.
-
-"Poor fellow!" said Merriam.
-
-In spite of himself his mind was visited by a tantalising recollection
-of Jennie's voice as it had come to him over the telephone. With no
-more evidence than that he was inclined to think that Simpson was right
-in saying that she would not have a waiter now. But it was impossible
-to speak of this to Rockwell.
-
-The latter had apparently dismissed the incident and was looking at his
-watch.
-
-"It's nearly eight o'clock," he said. "Put the rest of your things on
-and go down to Norman's rooms on the next floor. You're to have
-breakfast there with Miss Norman and Mrs. Norman. You'd better go down
-the stairs rather than in the elevator; you will be less likely to meet
-some one who will take you for the Senator. I am going to hunt up Dr.
-Hobart, the house physician here, and take him with me to this Madame
-Couteau's, or Jennie's, to see Norman. We must get him on his feet at
-once. A hotel physician will be the very man for that."
-
-"I must shave," said Merriam.
-
-"Oh, never mind that. Time is precious."
-
-Merriam thought of the train which he now planned to take. It left at
-nine-fifteen and would get him to Riceville a little after noon. He
-remembered, too, that he must telegraph to his assistant principal that
-he would miss the morning session. And he thought of the coming
-breakfast hour with Mollie June. Certainly time was precious to him.
-Nevertheless he said decidedly:
-
-"I'm going to shave all the same."
-
-Rockwell looked at him with a comprehending smile. "All right, my boy,"
-said the older man. "Doubtless it's very necessary. Hurry up and try
-not to cut yourself. I'll run along with the doctor."
-
-He moved to the door, stopped with his hand on the knob to say, "I shall
-probably drop in at the rooms before you're through breakfast," and was
-gone.
-
-Merriam sighed a certain relief and went into the bathroom to shave.
-
-A few minutes later, following Rockwell's injunction, he descended to
-the floor below by the stairs rather than the elevator. He forgot even
-to look at the pretty floor clerk on Floor Three, who last night was
-wearing his--Norman's--violets.
-
-When he knocked at the door labeled 323 it was the voice he most desired
-to hear that said, "Come in."
-
-He opened the door. The rose-and-white room was bright with morning
-sunshine, and half way down its length Mollie June, in a blue satin
-breakfast coat, with a lacy boudoir cap covering her hair, was standing
-before the little table which held the bowl of roses.
-
-"Good morning, Mr.--John," she said.
-
-He half perceived that her voice sounded tired and a little sad. But
-the daintiness of breakfast coats and boudoir caps was as strange in
-Merriam's world as white shoulders were. His eyes drank it in
-delightfully. In his pleasure her note of sadness escaped him. He
-answered almost gaily:
-
-"Good morning--Mollie June!"
-
-His tone probably betrayed his mood, and I dare say Mollie June guessed
-the reason for his happiness. But she ignored both mood and reason. She
-had turned back to the roses.
-
-"Come and help me," she said. "These flowers must have fresh water."
-
-Merriam pushed the door shut behind him and advanced rapidly. I am
-almost afraid he might have taken her in his arms. But Mollie June was
-already half way across the room with the roses, to lay them on a
-newspaper which she had previously spread on the seat of a
-straight-backed chair. So all that Merriam got his hands on was the
-bowl.
-
-"Empty it in there," said Mollie June, indicating the bathroom between
-the sitting room and Norman's empty bedroom, "and fill it with cold
-water."
-
-Thankful that no reply was immediately demanded, Merriam did as he was
-bid.
-
-When he reentered the sitting room with the fresh water, Mollie June
-stooped over the chair, gathered up the roses, and came towards him.
-
-"Set it back in the same place," she said.
-
-Merriam did so, and she came up to him--that is to say, to the bowl--and
-inserted the stems all together, and with her pink fingers wet from the
-cool water deftly arranged the blossoms. Then, drying her finger tips
-on a very small handkerchief, she turned and raised her eyes to him
-gravely. He saw at last that she was pale--that she had been wakeful.
-Perhaps she had been crying. In sudden concern he stood dumb.
-
-"Did you sleep well?" she asked.
-
-He mustered his forces to reply.
-
-"I am afraid I did," he said, ashamed.
-
-She looked at him forgivingly.
-
-"Of course you must have been dreadfully tired," she said. "I hardly
-slept at all," she added. "I am terribly worried about George. We
-didn't even know where he was until--a little while ago." Evidently
-Rockwell had already reported some part, at least, of Simpson's
-disclosure.
-
-For a moment they stood silent, tacitly avoiding reference to George
-Norman's ascertained whereabouts.
-
-Then Mollie June raised her eyes again.
-
-"I'm worried, too, about--what we did last night. We mustn't do--so,
-again."
-
-She met his eyes, very serious.
-
-"No!" Merriam assented.
-
-"I can't call you 'Mr. Merriam,' though," she cried. "And I mustn't
-call you 'John.' I've decided to call you 'Mr. John'!"
-
-"Thank you," said Merriam gravely. He was deeply touched by the
-unconscious confession.
-
-Mollie June turned away. "I must tell Aunt Mary you are here."
-
-Just then there came a knocking at the hall door.
-
-For an instant the boy and girl stared at each other as though in guilty
-alarm. Merriam started to go to the door. But Mollie June had
-recovered her wits.
-
-"No," she said. "You must be careful about being seen. Sit there."
-She pointed to the armchair which still faced the gas log between the
-windows at the end of the room farthest from the hall. "I'll see who it
-is."
-
-It proved to be no one more dangerous than Simpson, who with an
-assistant was prepared to set up a table in the sitting room and serve
-the grapefruit.
-
-And even while Mollie June was bidding him come in, Aunt Mary entered
-from the bedroom. With her was Miss Alicia Wayward, apparently much
-excited, with her hands full of newspapers.
-
-Merriam stood up, and Alicia, catching sight of him, dropped on the
-floor the paper she held in her right hand and advanced with an air of
-eagerness.
-
-"Oh, Mr.----," she began. Then, as Merriam took her hand, she stopped
-short in her sentence, laughed, and said, "Who are you this morning?"
-
-Merriam, whom Alicia always stimulated to play up, bowed over her hand
-as elegantly as he could and replied:
-
-"Senator Norman, I believe--at your service. Good morning, Miss Norman,"
-he added, politely, to the older woman.
-
-Aunt Mary merely nodded, rather grimly, and turned away as if to inspect
-Simpson's preparation of the breakfast table. Merriam wondered how much
-of Simpson's confession Rockwell had found time to report to her.
-
-But Alicia gave him little time for speculation.
-
-"Well, Senator," she rejoined, withdrawing her hand (you were always
-conscious when Alicia gave her hand and when she withdrew it), "you and
-the Mayor have made quite a noise in the world this morning. See!"
-
-She displayed the newspaper which she still held in her left hand. It
-was one of the leading Chicago dailies, which invariably prints one bold
-black headline across the top of the entire front page. The topic may be
-a world war or a dog fight, but the headline is always there in the same
-size and startling blackness of type. This morning it read:
-
- *Mayor Black Signs Ordinance*
-
-And one of the columns below carried the further head:
-
- _The Mayor and Senator Norman
- Reported to Have Broken
- With Traction Interests_
-
-
-"Oh!" exclaimed Mollie June, who had approached and read these captions.
-She looked at Merriam with wide-open eyes. I surmise that the newspaper
-headlines gave her, as indeed they gave to Merriam himself, the first
-actual realisation of the public interest attaching to what they had
-really felt to be a little private drama of their own.
-
-Aunt Mary had joined them.
-
-"Mr. Black has definitely signed it, you see," she said, with a touch of
-triumph in her tone.
-
-It appeared that the Mayor had not gone to the Council meeting at all,
-and the paper did not fail to point out that the Ordinance had become
-law without his signature, under the provisions of the City Charter, at
-nine o'clock; but late in the evening, shortly before the Council
-adjourned, the document had arrived by a messenger, with the Mayor's
-signature attached.
-
-Reporters had immediately set out in relentless pursuit and had routed
-the Mayor out of bed at his house between twelve and one o'clock and
-obtained a brief interview; the substance of which was that the public
-interest of the city demanded the improved conditions which the new law
-would insure, and that he was proud to complete with his approval the
-public-spirited action of the Councilmen in passing it.
-
-The rest was mere rumour and speculation, interlarded with many prudent
-"it is said's," but it seemed that some if not all of it must have been
-inspired by the Mayor. "It was said" that an important representative
-of the Traction interests had seen Senator Norman in his rooms at the
-Hotel De Soto early in the evening and pleaded with him the cause of the
-interested bondholders and stockholders, whose investments would be
-imperilled by the changes involved, but that he had stood firm on the
-ground of the public welfare. "It was said," too, that later Mayor
-Black had had a long conference with the Senator--well, it _had_ been
-rather long,--and that they had agreed that the interests of the plain
-people of Chicago must at all costs decide the issue. "It was said,"
-finally, that both Senator Norman and Mayor Black would probably join
-forces with the Reform League, whose program they had finally so
-powerfully supported, in demanding and obtaining other needed
-improvements in municipal conditions.
-
-From all of which it seemed to be clear that the Mayor, having taken an
-hour or so to think over the situation in which he found himself, had
-become convinced of the soundness of Aunt Mary's logic and had decided,
-without waiting for any further communication from the Norman camp, to
-claim the credit for the Ordinance and appeal for popular support
-thereon, taking care, however, to involve Senator Norman's name so that
-the real Norman should be compelled to join forces with him in his new
-departure.
-
-By the time the column of news and comment and a brief and cautious
-editorial on the occurrence had been read out by Alicia and one or two
-other papers glanced at, Simpson had set up and laid his table and had
-his first course served. He respectfully approached and inquired if
-they were ready for breakfast.
-
-"Certainly!" said Aunt Mary.
-
-Merriam looked at his watch. It was half past eight.
-
-"I ought to send my telegram to Riceville first," he said, "to let them
-know I shall be there on the noon train."
-
-"After the grapefruit," said Aunt Mary, with a decided note in her voice
-which led Merriam to look at her inquiringly.
-
-But he desired to exhibit the coolness of a man of the world, to whom
-telegrams were customary incidents of daily living and who habitually
-ran close to the wind in the matter of trains. So he acquiesced with a
-bookish "As you please," and moved with the others to the table.
-
-Simpson had decorated the center of the board with one of the hotel's
-slim glass vases holding a couple of pink carnations. Mollie June
-regarded this ornament with disfavour.
-
-"Let's have the roses instead, Mr. John," she said.
-
-And Merriam, to the scandal of Simpson, himself removed the carnations
-and set the bowl of roses in their place.
-
-They said little over the grapefruit. Alicia added a few humorous
-comments on points in the newspaper article, but Aunt Mary was divided
-between an anxious absent-mindedness and a curious questioning scrutiny
-of Merriam, and Merriam was distracted between a suppressed worry over
-his telegram and approaching train time and the delight of stolen
-glances at--Mrs. Senator Norman. As for Mrs. Senator Norman, she devoted
-herself chiefly to the fruit. Once or twice, in looking up, she almost
-unavoidably intercepted one of Merriam's guilty glances. When this
-happened, she met his eyes frankly but with a gravity that was
-pathetically, forgivingly rebuking.
-
-Presently Simpson was removing the fruit rinds and placing finger bowls.
-Merriam looked quickly at his watch again and spoke to the waiter:
-
-"Bring me a telegraph form, please."
-
-Aunt Mary's absent-mindedness instantly vanished.
-
-"What message are you going to send?" she asked in a restrained voice.
-
-"Missed night train. Will arrive at noon."
-
-"No!" said Aunt Mary. "Mr. Merriam," she pursued quickly, "until George
-is brought back here you must stay. After all this in the papers this
-morning there will be scores of people to see him to-day. He is known
-to be a late riser and never sees any one before ten or they would have
-been here before this. In a very few minutes they will begin to come.
-We will put off most of them, of course. But there are likely to be
-some whom we can't put off. We can't tell where George is, and we can't
-say we don't know where he is, and there will be one or two to whom we
-can't say we won't tell where he is. We must have you in reserve. You
-shall go to bed in George's room, ill with--with--lumbago. Dr. Hobart
-will attend you. When absolutely necessary we can show a man into the
-room, and you can say a few words. I will tell you what to say in each
-case. You can have your head half way under the covers, and can make
-your voice weak and husky. You will be safe enough from detection.
-Then by this evening at the latest we shall bring George back, and you
-can go down to Riceville on the night train. You will only have missed
-one day, and you will have saved us from a most serious dilemma."
-
-There was an appeal in the elderly woman's voice to which Merriam was
-not insensible, though the pull of habitual regularity at his school was
-strong in him.
-
-It is to be feared that Alicia spoiled Aunt Mary's effect. Across the
-table from Merriam, she was partly hidden from him by the flowers. But
-she leaned forward, bringing her face almost beside the roses, and spoke
-in her most honeyed tones:
-
-"Oh, do, Mr. Merriam! How can you resist it?" she added. "If I were a
-man and had the chance to be Mollie June's husband even for a day----"
-
-She stopped with her archest smile.
-
-Mollie June, with possibly the slightest augmentation of colour, brought
-forward a practical argument.
-
-"Since you will miss the morning anyway, it won't much matter if you
-miss the whole day. You haven't but one class in the afternoon, have
-you?"
-
-"Only senior algebra," said Merriam.
-
-"Miss Eldon can take that."
-
-"I suppose she could," said Merriam, who was realising that on this
-particular day advanced algebra would be to him the most distasteful of
-all branches of human learning.
-
-"Then you'll stay and help us--Mr. John!"
-
-The reader will perceive that this simple appeal was really much
-superior to any which the too sophisticated and calculating Alicia could
-contrive. A touch of wistfulness came into Mollie June's face with the
-word "help." His high promise of the night before was irresistibly
-recalled. And "Mr. John" reminded him of the delightfulness of fresh
-water for roses and of the unconscious confession which her compromise
-name for him had implied. Alicia discreetly retired behind the roses,
-and Aunt Mary waited with lips somewhat grimly pursed.
-
-Then, while Merriam hesitated, with his eyes on Mollie June's face--we
-must suppose that he was weighing her very practical argument,--the
-telephone rang.
-
-Simpson, with telegraph blanks in his hand, answered it, and reported
-that Mr. Rockwell wished to speak to Senator Norman.
-
-"This is--Norman," said Merriam cautiously into the telephone.
-
-"Ah!" said Rockwell's voice. "Well, you'll be pleased to learn that you
-are quieter. You aren't seeing things any more." (I'm not sure of
-that, thought Merriam.) "But you, he has a severe cold--fever and a
-cough--touch of bronchitis, probably. Hobart says he can't possibly be
-moved till to-night. Anyway, I don't see how we could get him into the
-hotel till then. You must stay, Merriam."
-
-"All right," said Merriam, surprising his interlocutor by his ready
-acquiescence, "I'll stay."
-
-"Good! I'll be down at the hotel in half an hour." Rockwell rang off.
-
-Merriam turned to face the three women.
-
-When Aunt Mary heard the news about George, she held out her hand to
-Simpson for the telegraph forms and wrote.
-
-In a moment she read:
-
-"'Ill with a touch of bronchitis. Hope to be back to-morrow. John
-Merriam.' Will that do?"
-
-"I suppose so," he assented.
-
-His words were almost drowned by a loud knock at the door.
-
-"Our day has begun," said Aunt Mary, rising with admirable composure.
-She handed the telegram to Simpson. "Send it at once. Into the
-bedroom, Mr. Merriam. Get into bed as soon as you can. You have
-bronchitis, you know,--not lumbago."
-
-But before Merriam could obey the door was suddenly opened.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XIII*
-
- *A CHANGE OF MANAGEMENT*
-
-
-The man who thus burst into Senator Norman's sitting room at nine
-o'clock in the morning without waiting for an invitation was an
-unpleasant but important personage--none other than J. J. Thompson (one
-never thought of calling him "Mr."), Norman's private political manager
-in all matters that involved handling the people's vote.
-
-He was a short, stoutish, belligerent type, about forty-five, with thin,
-untidy hair, a thin, untidy moustache, and, somewhere between the
-moustache and the hair, a pair of small blue eyes, which seemed
-incapable of any other expressions than aggressiveness and anger.
-Senator Norman--the real Norman--had long found him nearly as
-disagreeable as the reader will find him, but so useful in many
-political contingencies that he had never been able to bring himself to
-dispense with him.
-
-Having popped explosively into the room, Thompson stopped short at sight
-of the three women. For the first instant or two he did not notice
-Merriam, who had quietly slipped into the great armchair that faced the
-gas log, with his back almost squarely to the room.
-
-"Good morning, Mr. Thompson," said Aunt Mary. "We were just having
-breakfast."
-
-Alicia and Mollie June still sat at the table, and Simpson stood a
-little at one side. Thompson knew who the two girls were, and they knew
-who he was, but he had never been presented in Norman's family except to
-Miss Norman--a fact which he resented keenly,--so they did not speak.
-Alicia sat back in her chair and stared insolently, while Mollie June
-leaned forward and rearranged a rose in the bowl.
-
-"I'm sorry to break in this way," Thompson said--even he was slightly
-abashed,--"but I've got to speak to the Senator."
-
-"Come back a little later, Mr. Thompson," ventured Merriam in a hoarse
-whisper.
-
-The "Mr." was a false note, and its effect was to anger Thompson.
-
-"No!" he cried, the pugnacious gleam that was never far below the
-surface of his little eyes appearing in them. "I've got to speak to you
-now! I've got a right to!"
-
-He advanced. He would have passed the table so as to approach Merriam.
-But there was only a narrow space on either side of it, and in one of
-those avenues stood Simpson behind Alicia, while Aunt Mary had quietly
-moved into the other, standing with her hand on the back of the chair in
-which Merriam had been sitting. So Thompson found himself barricaded,
-as it were, and stopped short and shouted across the table and over the
-head of Mollie June.
-
-"What in--what's the meaning of all this--this stuff in the papers?"
-
-Thompson's difficulty in expressing himself under the handicap of the
-interdiction against profanity imposed by the presence of the women was
-a trifle ludicrous. But his tone and manner were almost as bad as an
-oath would have been.
-
-Alicia's eyebrows rose. She rose herself.
-
-"Perhaps we had better withdraw," she said.
-
-If Merriam, who had never seen her in any other than a gracious and
-seductive mood, could have turned his head to look, he would have
-marvelled at her freezing disdain. Mollie June imitated her in rising
-and in a more youthful hauteur. Without waiting for any reply Alicia
-turned and walked into the bedroom, and Mollie June followed.
-
-But feminine disdain, however magnificent, had little effect on
-Thompson. He was obviously relieved. He looked at Aunt Mary, plainly
-desiring that she should go too.
-
-"No, I think I'll remain, Mr. Thompson," she said pleasantly.
-
-Then he looked at Simpson, and the latter cast an inquiring glance at
-Aunt Mary.
-
-"You may stay, please, Simpson," said she. "We shall be finishing our
-breakfast presently."
-
-Before Thompson could digest this snub Alicia reentered from the
-bedroom. She carried a white knitted wool scarf, with which she went to
-Merriam.
-
-"Don't you feel chilly, George?" she asked. "You can't be too careful
-with that throat."
-
-She knelt down by his chair, put the scarf over his head, brought it
-down past his cheeks, tied it loosely under his chin, and threw the ends
-back over his shoulders.
-
-"Now, lean back. Isn't that better? Mr. Norman has a severe cold," she
-said in the general direction of Thompson. "The doctor is afraid of
-bronchitis," she added, as she rose and drew the shades. "That light is
-getting too bright for your eyes."
-
-She flashed a glance at Aunt Mary and returned to the bedroom.
-
-Merriam had been feeling that it was only a matter of minutes before
-Thompson--whoever Thompson might be--would somehow force his way to his
-side and look down into his face and, probably, perceive the imposture
-as Mayor Black had done. But now, with the welcome aid of the scarf, he
-had the bravado to turn partly in his chair and say throatily:
-
-"What do you want?"
-
-Thompson had remained a gaping spectator of the tying up of Merriam's
-head, but this question enabled him to recover his natural
-aggressiveness. With one defiant glance at Aunt Mary, he started forward
-and pushed his way past Simpson, who could have stopped him only by an
-actual physical offensive.
-
-"What do I want?" he repeated sarcastically, as he stood looking down on
-the senatorial head bundled in the scarf. "I want to know what the hell
-you've gone and done--you and Black--without letting anybody know you
-were going to! What about Crockett? Didn't you promise him at eight
-o'clock last night that you would tell Black to veto? And then this!"
-
-Thompson had drawn a folded newspaper from his coat pocket. He struck
-it with his other hand.
-
-"Is that the way to treat your friends who've stuck by you? What about
-the election next week? What about the state machine? What about your
-campaign fund? Have you gone nutty? Did you really do it, or is the
-Mayor lying? That's what I want to know!"
-
-"What business is it of yours?" asked the victim of this torrent of
-questions as he stared from between the folds of his woolen scarf at the
-unlighted gas log.
-
-Merriam really was asking for information, but the politician could not
-know this. It seemed to him the last insult--and repudiation. He fell
-back a step dramatically.
-
-"So that's it!" he cried. "After I've managed two campaigns for you!
-I've done your dirty work for ten years! And now, over night, what
-business is it of mine? You throw me over! And all your friends. The
-men who sent you to the Senate of the United States and kept you there.
-And what for? To join that fool Black! And the Reform League, I
-suppose. Philip Rockwell and his gang of preachers and short-haired
-women and long-haired mollycoddles! You'll appeal to the dear People!
-Bah!"
-
-Thompson had by this time apparently forgotten entirely the presence of
-Aunt Mary and Simpson. He snatched a cigar from his waistcoat pocket and
-bit the end off it, produced a match from somewhere, and lighted it,
-emitting volumes of smoke. He thumped with his newspaper on the arm of
-Merriam's chair and in an impressively lowered tone continued:
-
-"Listen to me. It won't do, Senator. You can't get away with it. Not
-you. Reform and the people and pure politics and all that. If you'd
-started in on that line twenty years ago,--may be! I don't say it
-couldn't be made to pay. But not by you, at this time of day. It's too
-late. You've tied up with the other gang. They know you. They know
-too much about you. They won't let you do it. It's no use trying. Of
-course, if you're tired of your job--if you're hankering to quit--if you
-want to go down in a grand smash,--all right! But if you want to stay
-in the United States Senate, there's just one way you can do it, and
-that's to play the old game in the old way with the old crowd. Savez?"
-
-All this was a trifle hard on young Merriam. Thompson had told who he
-was, so that the boy realised the critical character of the interview.
-But there was so much else he needed to know. How had the real Norman
-been in the habit of treating this man? How would he probably have
-acted in such a situation as they were pretending? The only thing he
-could do was to say as little as possible. Now that it was necessary to
-make some response, what he said was:
-
-"We'll see about that."
-
-Thompson was rather encouraged than otherwise by this remark. He had
-not, of course, expected any immediate acquiescence.
-
-"You'll see all right if you keep on," he retorted with elephantine
-irony. "But for God's sake, Senator, try to see things in time. It's
-not too late yet. Turn the Mayor down. You aren't committed openly.
-He is, but you aren't. Let him go smash alone. He was always a fool!
-You can swear to Crockett that you told Black to veto. It don't matter
-whether he believes you or not. He'll take you back. This Ordinance
-business don't matter. They'll fix that some way. There are bigger
-things than that coming, and they know how useful you can be. You can't
-keep on with this other."
-
-"Can't I?" asked Merriam, not unskillfully fishing for further
-revelations.
-
-"Listen to me, Senator. Didn't you accept fifty thousand dollars of
-common stock in the United Traction Companies? Are you going to give
-that back? Will Crockett _let_ you give it back? Not he! Have you
-forgotten how we cornered the vote in Kankakee County when you ran six
-years ago? Crockett knows about that. The whole crowd know it. And
-what about that nice little honorarium you received for your vote in the
-Senate on the last amendment to the Interstate Commerce Act? If you've
-forgotten it, the men who put it up haven't! Do you think they'll let
-you go off like this? As long as you play the game and keep your good
-looks and can make your popular speeches they'll keep you in the Senate,
-and the good things will come your way. They'll get you a Cabinet job
-if you want it. Just say the word. But if you throw them over, they'll
-turn on you. These little things I've been reminding you of will leak
-out. Man alive, you're liable to end in the pen!"
-
-"Perhaps," said Merriam, "but I shouldn't go alone. A man named
-Thompson would go with me, eh? And maybe even Mr. Crockett. And others
-I might name." (Merriam wished he _could_ name them.)
-
-"That for your threats!" he finished grandly and snapped his fingers,
-thanking heaven for the role of villain he had enacted in a certain
-college melodrama, in connection with which he had, by diligent
-practice, acquired the not common art of snapping one's fingers
-effectively.
-
-Thompson, who, had unwontedly removed his cigar from his mouth at
-Merriam's speech, now backed away from the huddled figure.
-
-"You think you'd do that!" he said, in a voice in which cynical scorn
-contended with something a little like fright.
-
-"Not unless I am forced to," said Merriam. "But I have chosen a new
-course, and I mean to follow it."
-
-But Thompson, standing solidly in the spot to which he had retreated, as
-if he had "dug in" there, restored his cigar to the accustomed corner of
-his face and narrowed his little eyes till they were hideously smaller
-than usual.
-
-"It's unfortunate, Senator," he said, with a kind of exaggerated
-suavity, "that this reform in your public morals last night was not
-accompanied by a corresponding change in your private morals."
-
-"What do you mean?" asked Merriam quickly, and his voice faltered ever
-so little, a fact which the other did not miss.
-
-"Oh, you were known, you know, at Reiberg's Place. You told everybody
-who you were, I understand. You must have been pretty gay. Celebrating
-your new virtue, I suppose! But handing fifty-dollar bills to
-dance-hall girls isn't quite the line for a Reform League hero, Senator!
-And we know where you went afterwards. She's a pretty little thing, but
-she's not in the Reform League picture! Suppose we say nothing about
-the United Traction stock or the Kankakee County vote or the Interstate
-Commerce business or any other little incidents of the past like that,
-but just start with this little affair of last night. How will that mix
-with pure politics, Senator?"
-
-It was Thompson's turn to enjoy himself. He could not refrain from
-following up this new vein.
-
-"Your old friends are liberal-minded, Senator. But your new friends, the
-great American people, are a little inclined to be narrow in matters of
-private morality."
-
-Thompson's follow-up attack was a mistake. It gave Merriam time to
-think and decide upon his course.
-
-"I was _not_ at Reiberg's last night," he said, recovering his loftiness
-and adding coldness thereto. "Nor anywhere else. I spent the night in
-this hotel."
-
-Thompson stared. For a moment it almost seemed that his jaw would fall
-and his precious cigar drop out. But he recovered himself with a sneer.
-
-"You did, did you? In the company of your wife, I suppose! And that
-thing about your head is really to keep you from catching cold and not
-to keep your head from splitting open with the headache? You're pretty
-fresh this morning, considering. I hand it to you there. But"--his
-rising anger got the better of his unnatural affectation of suavity,
-which he had maintained up to the limit of his endurance--"but that lie
-won't go! You don't know what you did last night. You were stewed
-right. You told every Tom, Dick, and Harry, and Mary and Jane at the
-dance hall that you were Senator Norman. You fool!"
-
-"After that," said Merriam, playing his part regally, or, let us say,
-senatorially, "I can only suggest to you that behind you is a door which
-I wish you would make use of as soon as possible."
-
-Thompson seemed decidedly nonplused at this. The real Norman had always
-been amenable to threats and on the whole patient under abuse.
-
-"Do you mean," he burst out, "that I'm not to be your manager? You turn
-me down cold?"
-
-At this juncture there came a quick, light knock at the door to which
-Merriam had just referred so grandly.
-
-Simpson looked quickly at Aunt Mary and then at Merriam.
-
-"Let me know who it is," said the latter, realising that he must seem to
-be in command.
-
-When Simpson opened the door it was Rockwell who pushed past him. He
-stopped short before Thompson (with his cigar) in hostile confrontation.
-
-Cautiously Merriam peered around the off side of his high backed chair.
-
-"Mr. Thompson," he said, "you know Mr. Rockwell, I believe. My new
-manager!"
-
-For a moment Thompson stood. Once his mouth opened, almost certainly to
-frame an oath. It is strange evidence of the survival of chivalry in
-American life that Aunt Mary's presence restrained that outburst.
-Instead, we must suppose, he took the stub of his cigar from his mouth
-and dashed it on the carpet.
-
-"I'm through!" he said. Then to Merriam: "I'll use your door all
-right--for the last time--till you send for me!"
-
-He caught up his hat and walked past Rockwell, within an inch of
-brushing against him but not looking at him.
-
-At the door he turned.
-
-"You've read your morning papers, I suppose! Have you read _Tidbits_?
-Take a look at it!"
-
-The door slammed behind him.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XIV*
-
- *HOLDING THE FORT*
-
-
-The reverberation of Thompson's slamming still echoed in the room when
-the bedroom door opened and Alicia sailed in, followed more demurely by
-Mollie June.
-
-"Good morning, Philip," said Alicia to her fiance.
-
-Then she turned to Merriam.
-
-"Oh, you did splendidly!" she cried.
-
-"Did I?" said Merriam, awkwardly trying to get the woolen scarf off his
-head.
-
-"Indeed you did. We listened to every word. I through the keyhole. And
-Mollie June lay down on the floor and listened under the door. It was
-mean of me to take the keyhole, but I'm too old and fat for the other
-position."
-
-Possibly Mollie June's recent prostration accounted for the color in her
-cheeks.
-
-"Help him off with that thing, dear," Alicia added, and herself advanced
-to Rockwell and took his hands, offering to be kissed--an offer of which
-Rockwell took advantage with some fervour.
-
-"Yes, I'll help you," said Mollie June, moving somewhat timidly in
-Merriam's direction.
-
-He met her more than half way.
-
-"Please," he said. "I'm all bound round with a woolen string."
-
-Mollie June drew the ends of the scarf down off his shoulders and untied
-the loose knot under his chin.
-
-"There!" she said, looking up at him.
-
-Merriam snatched the thing off his head, ruffling his hair.
-
-"Thank you!"
-
-Rockwell's voice reached them across the room. Aunt Mary had been
-hurriedly narrating the happenings with Thompson. He now looked
-approvingly at Merriam.
-
-"That's all right," he said, reflectively. "Very good. Yes. Just as
-well to defy him at once. Could hardly have been better. Ah, there's
-Hobart now, I suppose," for a discreet knock had sounded at the hall
-door.
-
-Rockwell himself admitted the house physician, a bald, youngish man,
-with nose glasses over slightly shifty eyes and a quite unprofessional
-manner--the manner of a "smart" young business man.
-
-Merriam and Mollie June joined the others for the introductions. These
-formalities over, Dr. Hobart confirmed the report of Norman's condition
-which Rockwell had given them over the telephone. He "was getting along
-all right"--with a sidelong glance at Mollie June--"except for a touch
-of bronchitis."
-
-Mollie June betrayed an embarrassed uneasiness. Merriam wondered just
-how much she knew of her husband's whereabouts--of his escapades in
-general.
-
-"Very well," said Aunt Mary briskly, "you must go right to bed, Mr.
-Merriam, before some one else comes. You're ill with bronchitis, of
-course. That scarf was a splendid idea, Alicia, but it was a close
-shave. We mustn't run any more risks. You will attend him, Dr.
-Hobart?"
-
-"Of course," said the young physician, evidently much amused. "Mr.
-Rockwell has told me the story. It's as good as a play. Mr. Merriam--I
-mean, Senator,--I order you to bed at once."
-
-"Very well," said Merriam and turned towards Senator Norman's bedroom.
-
-"I'll show you where things are," said Rockwell, accompanying him. "I
-explored a bit last night."
-
-In the bedroom with the door closed behind them, Merriam hesitated.
-
-"Better get your things off at once," said Rockwell, going to the bureau
-and stooping to open the bottom drawer. "It's nearly ten o'clock," he
-continued, rummaging. "The reporters will be here any minute. I'm
-surprised some enterprising chap hasn't arrived already. We'll try to
-keep them off, of course. But some of those fellows are mighty clever.
-Here we are--pajamas," he added, pulling out the garments for which he
-had been searching.
-
-Then he crossed to a closet, from which in a moment he emerged with a
-bath robe and a pair of bedroom slippers.
-
-"I'll put these by the bed so that if there's any reason for you to get
-up you can do so easily. But unless something happens to change our
-plans, you're much too sick to get up to-day."
-
-A knock sounded at the door into the sitting room. Rockwell answered it
-and returned grinning.
-
-"Aunt Mary says that Simpson shall bring you some ham and a cup of
-coffee as soon as you're in bed. Why didn't you tell me you have had
-nothing to eat but grapefruit?"
-
-"I had forgotten," said Merriam, realising nevertheless that he was very
-hungry.
-
-Rockwell dropped into a comfortable chair. "It's rather good fun," he
-said. "This conspiracy business. I do hope we can pull it through."
-
-By this time Merriam was inside the senatorial pajamas. He approached
-the bed, turned down the covers, and awkwardly climbed in, feeling for
-all the world like a little boy who has been sent to bed in the daytime
-for being naughty.
-
-"Now about lights," said Rockwell rising. The window shades had not
-been raised; they were using the chandelier. "Not these center lights,
-nor the night lamp. Both are too bright on your face in case---- Let's
-try this side light."
-
-He turned on a light on the wall on the other side of Merriam's bed,
-switched off the ceiling lights, and surveyed the effect.
-
-"That's good," he said. "If we have to bring any one in, you can lie
-looking this way and still your face will be in shadow. Lie well down
-in with the covers up to your chin. Now I'll bring you some breakfast."
-
-Merriam, left alone for a minute, wished he had been permitted to finish
-his breakfast in the sitting room before being sent to bed. He had
-counted on that breakfast, and the first course had been fully as
-delightful as he had pictured it.
-
-Rockwell soon returned, carrying a tray on which was a plate of really
-fine ham, with rolls and butter and a cup of coffee.
-
-"I guess I'm not too sick to sit up to eat, so long as only you're
-here," said Merriam, suiting his posture to the word and falling to with
-appetite.
-
-Rockwell drew up a chair and for several minutes sat smoking in silence.
-Then he said:
-
-"Did you catch Thompson's parting shot about _Tidbits_?"
-
-"Yes," Merriam replied, without interrupting operations. "What did he
-mean?"
-
-Rockwell drew a clipping from his pocket. "Listen," he said, and read
-the following:
-
-
- _The Senator's Night Off_
-
- There was a dance last night at Reiberg's Place on the West
- Side. Most of our readers do not know Reiberg's. It comprises
- a dancing floor over a saloon, with a bar attached for the
- convenience of patrons who may not be willing--or, as the
- evening advances, able--to go downstairs to the saloon; also
- certain small rooms where one may drink or otherwise enjoy
- oneself quite privately. Its patrons, male and female, are
- chiefly employees in the neighbouring factories.
-
- But last night Reiberg's was honoured, we are credibly informed,
- by a guest from quite a different sphere--no less than a Senator
- of the United States. We are not able at present to give his
- name with certainty, and of course we are not willing to give
- names in such a case until we have verified our information with
- scrupulous care. But he certainly announced himself as Senator
- ----, and he looked the part, and distributed money, presumably
- from the salary paid to him out of public funds, with lavish
- abandon.
-
- Having tried to kiss one of the prettier girls and been knocked
- down by her escort--who evidently knew naught of "senatorial
- courtesies,"--he emphasised the sincerity of his tipsy apologies
- by handing the lucky insulted one a fifty-dollar bill.
-
- Later, it is said, he attached himself to another young woman,
- unaccompanied, it would seem, by any pugnacious swain, with whom
- he spent several hours, partly on the dancing floor and partly
- elsewhere.
-
- Finally, with we fear little of his money left about him, he was
- charitably carried off by the chauffeur of his waiting taxi.
-
- Well, well, after the arduous strain of legislative labours, one
- doubtless feels the need of a little relaxation. We hope the
- Senator enjoyed himself.
-
-
-Rockwell folded up his clipping. "A tolerably close paraphrase of
-Simpson's story," he remarked. "They have the facts pretty straight."
-
-"What is this _Tidbits_?" asked Merriam, sitting on his pillow with the
-tray in his lap. He had stopped eating.
-
-"Oh, a dirty little sheet of scandal. Twice a week. But it's pretty
-widely read. And they know his name, of course. In fact any one can
-guess it, because Senator Norman is known to be in the city, and there
-is no other United States Senator stopping here now, so far as any one
-knows. It will be a bit nasty if they push this sort of thing. They'll
-put it in the regular newspapers next--a straight news item with his
-name in it."
-
-"That article doesn't say where he went afterwards," said Merriam. "But
-Thompson knew.
-
-"They're keeping that in reserve. Listen!"
-
-Male voices were audible from the sitting room.
-
-"The reporters!" exclaimed Rockwell. "I'll take that tray. Lie down
-and cover up. I must go and help Aunt Mary hold the fort."
-
-Merriam finished his coffee in a gulp, and Rockwell set the tray on the
-seat of a chair and hastily entered the sitting room.
-
-There followed a long period--more than an hour, in fact--during which
-Merriam lay in bed and listened to varied voices from the other room,
-and speculated as to what was going on, and wondered what he should do
-if the door should open and some irresistibly aggressive reporter or
-irresistibly important political friend of Norman's be ushered in.
-
-But Rockwell and Aunt Mary, with the occasional support of Dr. Hobart,
-successfully withstood the army of reporters and a few minor politicians
-who called, and at length the loud masculine voices from the other room
-ceased, and Merriam lay still, somewhat fatigued by his prolonged strain
-of apprehension, and waited.
-
-Presently the door opened, and Aunt Mary and Rockwell entered. Merriam
-had closed his eyes, but Rockwell speedily opened them.
-
-"Oh, you can wake up," he said. "It's all right. The coast is clear."
-
-Merriam rolled over so as to lie on his back. "Well, what next?" he
-said.
-
-Aunt Mary and Rockwell looked at each, other. Rockwell spoke:
-
-"Miss Norman and I are going out. We shall drop in at the Mayor's for a
-few minutes and then go on to a Reform League luncheon at the Urban
-Club. I am due to act as toastmaster or chairman for the speeches
-afterwards, and it will be just as well to have Miss Norman present.
-She will symbolise the prospective new alliance. We are going to leave
-you under the care of Alicia and Mrs. Norman. No one else is likely to
-come for several hours now. We shall be back at about half past two or
-three. Meanwhile luncheon. You didn't get a very big breakfast after
-all. Simpson shall serve it here by your bed, and Alicia and Mollie
-June can eat with you."
-
-This disposition suited Merriam excellently well, but he made no
-comment. He tried to decide whether Aunt Mary was really eyeing him
-sharply or whether he only imagined it.
-
-In any case she almost immediately added a rather formal "Good morning,"
-and returned to the sitting room.
-
-Rockwell lingered a moment.
-
-"We're going to try to bring Norman back here this evening, you know.
-If it's at all possible. If it shouldn't be--if he's too sick or
-something, I suppose you could stay over another day still?"
-
-Merriam thought with a panic of his school.
-
-"Not unless it's absolutely necessary," he replied with a good deal of
-emphasis.
-
-"It probably won't be," said Rockwell reassuringly. "We're quite as
-anxious to get rid of you, you know," he added smiling, "as you can be
-to get away from us. A double's a horribly dangerous thing to have
-around. Well, so long."
-
-In less than five minutes after Rockwell's departure there came a knock
-at that door upon which Merriam's attention was concentrated--a
-distinctly feminine knock.
-
-Merriam disposed himself as discreetly as possible under the bedclothes
-and answered it.
-
-Alicia opened the door and peeped. "May I come in?" She opened it
-wider and came through. "I'm the chaperon, you know."
-
-"Are you?" asked Merriam smiling.
-
-Alicia was pleased by his smile and said so.
-
-"I always like it when people laugh at the idea of my being a chaperon."
-
-"Why?" said Merriam.
-
-"Oh, so long as it seems funny for a woman to be a chaperon she's
-young."
-
-"It seems funny for you," said Merriam.
-
-"That's very nicely said," returned Alicia. "Come in, Mollie June."
-
-As Mollie June did not appear, Alicia looked into the sitting room.
-
-"Why," she said, "she must have gone into her bedroom. I do believe
-she's doing her hair over." And Alicia raised her eyebrows.
-
-In spite of hope deferred Merriam was made happy. He recalled the
-supreme necessity of shaving earlier that morning.
-
-Alicia dropped into the chair by the bed in which Rockwell had sat and
-pretended to scan the invalid's face solicitously.
-
-"I should say, Senator," she remarked, "that you do not _look_ like a
-very sick man. Your condition must be improving. We can hope you will
-be able to take a little nourishment."
-
-"You can hope that all right," grinned the invalid.
-
-"I've ordered----" Alicia, making talk, plunged into the details of a
-quite elaborate refection.
-
-By the time she had finished and had replied to one or two humorous
-comments from Merriam, whose spirits were certainly rising, Simpson
-presented himself with the substantial fulfillment of her prospectus.
-And not until then did Mollie June join them. Her coiffure, though
-simple, was certainly faultless and so far as a masculine eye could
-judge newly arranged.
-
-Alicia caught Merriam's glance and read his thoughts and smiled.
-
-"What is it?" asked Mollie June suspiciously.
-
-"What is what?" said Merriam, lamely.
-
-"The Senator has been very humorous over the meal I have ordered,"
-explained Alicia more deftly.
-
-"Don't call him the Senator!" cried Mollie June. "His name is"--her eyes
-met Merriam's for an instant--"Mr. John."
-
-"I see," said Alicia. In the dim light Merriam was not sure whether she
-raised her eyebrows again or not, but he was afraid she did.
-
-Simpson, intent only on the proper illumination of his carefully laid
-cloth, but unwittingly conspiring with the elder gods (Fate and Destiny
-and the like), had turned on the night lamp and set it on the corner of
-the table next to Mollie June, and its radiance fell full on her
-slender, erect figure, now arrayed in--Merriam had not the slightest
-idea what kind of fabric it was, but it was creamy white, and at her
-waist was one of the red roses he had helped to freshen. The circle of
-bright light extended up to her white throat. Occasionally when she
-leaned forward her face dipped into it, but for the most part showed
-only dimly in the fainter glow that came through the shade of the lamp.
-He could see her eyes, however, and not infrequently they rested on him.
-His, it is to be feared, were on her most of the time.
-
-When at length the luncheon was finished and Merriam had expressed
-himself as disinclined for cigarettes and Simpson had removed his dishes
-and his table and finally himself, Alicia, who was really a most
-good-natured person--a pearl among chaperons,--yawned and announced that
-she had a novel which she desired to finish, and that, if they didn't
-mind, she proposed to retire to the sitting room to prosecute that
-literary occupation.
-
-"You can amuse him for a while, Mrs. Norman," she said, with a humorous
-smile; Merriam did not venture to question what more subtle thoughts
-that smile might veil. "He's your guest more than mine, seeing it's
-your husband he's impersonating. If he gets too boring, you can come for
-me and I'll spell you."
-
-Neither Mollie June nor Merriam replied, but Alicia, still with that
-amused smile, rose and calmly departed. She left the door open, of
-course, between the two rooms.
-
-Upon the two young people, thus abruptly left alone together, there
-descended an embarrassed silence. For a minute or so they heard Alicia
-moving about in the sitting room and then the small sounds which one
-makes in adjusting one's self comfortably in an armchair with a
-footstool and a book, ending in a pleasurable sigh.
-
-Merriam was overwhelmed by the necessity of finding talk. He could not
-lie there in bed and stare at Mollie June, however beatitudinous it
-might have been to do so. Several seconds of prodigious intellectual
-labour brought forth this polite question:
-
-"Do you hear often from the girls in Riceville?"
-
-"Not very often," said Mollie June.
-
-We can hardly describe this reply as helpful.
-
-Again he struggled mightily, with the banal kind of result that usually
-follows such paroxysms conversational topic-hunting:
-
-"You must find your life here and in Washington wonderful."
-
-"It seemed so, at first," said Mollie June.
-
-"But it didn't last?"
-
-Merriam was conscious of danger on this tack but he must have a moment's
-rest before he could wrestle with the void again.
-
-"No," said Mollie June.
-
-Merriam waited, not shirking his responsibilities but conscious that she
-meant to continue. She was always deliberate of speech--a fact which
-gave a piquant significance to her simplest words.
-
-"You see," she said, "I didn't really care very much for George. I
-thought I did at first, but I didn't. Papa really made me marry him.
-And you know he is untrue to me."
-
-Merriam could have gasped. He felt himself falling through the thin ice
-of mere "conversation," on which he had tried so hard to skate, into the
-depths of real talk. But it was good to be in the depths. And after
-his first breathlessness he was filled with love and pity. How much the
-brief, girlish sentences portrayed of disillusionment and tragedy!
-
-"You know about that then?" he asked gently.
-
-"Of course," said Mollie June, almost scornfully. "Before company Aunt
-Mary and Alicia and Mr. Rockwell keep up the pretence that I can know
-nothing about such things. I keep it up too! But Aunt Mary knows all
-about them. George never can conceal anything from her. And I make her
-tell me everything. Everything!"
-
-Merriam, I suspect, hardly sensed the amount of intellect and character
-which Mollie June's last statement betrayed--I use the word advisedly,
-for, of course, intellect and character detract from a young girl's
-charm, and if she desires to be pretty and alluring she should, and
-usually does, carefully conceal whatever of such attributes she may be
-handicapped with. But to "make" Aunt Mary disclose things she wished
-not to disclose was no small achievement.
-
-"You know about this Jennie Higgins?" Merriam asked.
-
-"Yes. I've seen her and talked with her."
-
-"How?" was Merriam's startled question.
-
-"She's a manicurist, you know. She's employed at ----" Mollie June
-mentioned a well-known establishment on Michigan Avenue, the name of
-which for obvious reasons I suppress. "When I found that out, I went
-there to have my nails done. I just asked for--Madame Couteau, and
-waited till she was free. She didn't know me, of course. She's
-pretty," said Mollie June, with judicial coldness.
-
-After a moment she added, "And sweet and--warm."
-
-"But how any man can leave you----" cried Merriam, treading recklessly
-on several kinds of dynamite.
-
-"You haven't seen her," said Mollie June.
-
-Merriam was silenced. It was true he had not seen her. And he
-remembered with confusion that he had talked with her over a wire and,
-as Rockwell put it, had not "needed much prompting."
-
-He stole a glance at Mollie June. The purity of her white-clad figure,
-its brave erectness, and the impassive sadness so out of place on her
-young face caught at his heart.
-
-"How can you stand it?" he cried, and would have put out his hand to her
-had he not remembered that he was in bed and that his arm was clad only
-in the sleeve of a suit of pajamas.
-
-Mollie June looked at him.
-
-"I don't know," she said. "What else can I do?"
-
-Merriam lay still, now openly staring at her. Of all intolerable things
-of which he had ever heard it seemed to him the worst that Mollie
-June--"the prettiest girl,"--with all her loveliness and sweetness and
-courage and youthful joy in life, should be so slighted and wronged and
-saddened and degraded. It was like seeing a rose trampled under foot.
-(Merriam's mental simile was not very original perhaps, but to him it
-was intensely poignant.)
-
-For a moment she met his gaze, then looked away. In the subdued light
-Merriam could not be sure, but he thought there was a new brightness of
-tears in her eyes, released perhaps by his very apparent though
-inexpressive sympathy.
-
-Presently the thought which had inevitably come to him forced itself
-almost against his will to expression:
-
-"You could divorce him."
-
-"I've thought of that." (Somehow this shocked Merriam.) "But it would
-be too horrible. Have you read the divorce trials in the papers? With
-a Senator they would make the most of it. And Aunt Mary won't let me do
-that. It would ruin him politically, she says."
-
-"Well, what if it did? How about you?"
-
-"Oh, she loves him, you know. She thinks he can be brought to change
-his ways. She believes in him still."
-
-"Do you?"
-
-"No," said Mollie June, with the clear-eyed cruel simplicity of youth.
-
-"He may die," was the thought in Merriam's mind, but this could not be
-said.
-
-Full of pity, he gazed at her again, and something in the profile of her
-averted face overcame him. He started up on his elbow--all this time he
-had lain with his head on his arm on the pillow.
-
-"Mollie June!" he cried, his voice softly raised.
-
-She did not look at him.
-
-"Dear Mollie June! You must know I love you. I loved you three years
-ago in Riceville. There's nothing wrong about that. When you're in
-such trouble I must tell you. It can't do you any good. There's nothing
-we can do. But--I do love you!"
-
-She turned her eyes upon him.
-
-"Why didn't you tell me that--in Riceville?"
-
-"Oh!" he cried.
-
-Mollie June rose and came to the bedside.
-
-"I know," she said with womanly gentleness. "You couldn't, of course.
-Because you were so poor. I ought to have waited--John!"
-
-For a moment her hand hovered above his head as if she would have
-stroked his ruffled hair. But it descended to her side again.
-
-"We mustn't talk like this. I must go. I'll tell Alicia we
-are--bored!"
-
-There were tears not only in her eyes but on her cheeks now.
-Undisguisedly she wiped them away and carefully dried her eyes with a
-small handkerchief.
-
-"I shall see you at dinner," she said with a brave smile, and, turning,
-walked quickly out of the room.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XV*
-
- *COUNCIL OF WAR*
-
-
-It was some time before Alicia, with something more, if possible, than
-her usual aplomb, covering, let us hope, a guilty conscience, entered
-the bedroom, presumably to "spell" Mollie June in amusing the supposed
-invalid.
-
-Alicia made some remark which hardly penetrated the invalid's
-consciousness, but scarcely had she sat down in Mollie June's chair
-before a quick knock sounded at the hall door of the sitting room,
-almost immediately followed by the sound of the opening of that door,
-and Alicia sprang up again and hurried away, to be before Mollie June in
-receiving the newcomers. It began to irritate Merriam to perceive how
-they all treated her as a little girl, when as he now thrillingly
-realised she was very much a woman in spite of the youthfulness of her
-face and figure.
-
-The arrivals in the other room proved to be Rockwell and Aunt Mary
-returned. Recognising their voices, Merriam glanced at his watch under
-his pillow and was amazed to find that it was nearly four o'clock.
-
-Rockwell appeared in the doorway.
-
-"Come into this other room," he said. "We must hold a council of war."
-
-"Shall I dress?" asked Merriam, gladly getting out of bed.
-
-"No, no," said Rockwell impatiently. "Just put on your bath robe and
-slippers."
-
-Having followed this instruction, Merriam stepped to the glass and with
-a few quick strokes of the brush smoothed his hair, Rockwell watching
-him without comment. Then they went into the sitting room.
-
-Merriam blankly perceived that the sitting room was empty--of Mollie
-June.
-
-"She has a slight headache," said Alicia kindly--suffering still, we may
-hope, from pangs of conscience.
-
-Aunt Mary was sitting in the senatorial armchair, which had been turned
-about to face the rest of the room. She looked long and hard at
-Merriam--an intensification of that close scrutiny with which, it seemed
-to him, she had always distinguished him. Merriam, in his bath robe,
-sustained it awkwardly but manfully. Alicia and Rockwell were standing.
-The silence was rather portentous.
-
-"Sit down, all of you," said Aunt Mary suddenly.
-
-The three younger persons present--even Rockwell seemed youthful beside
-Aunt Mary in her dominant mood--rather hurriedly found seats.
-
-"Is the door locked, Philip?"
-
-Rockwell rose, went to the hall door, turned the key, and returned to
-his chair.
-
-"Tell him," said Aunt Mary.
-
-Rockwell's budget of news was certainly considerable and important.
-
-In the first place, George Norman was "better." Rockwell and Aunt Mary
-had gone to see him at Jennie's after the Reform League luncheon. That
-was why they were so late. He undoubtedly had a touch of bronchitis,
-with some fever and a cough, but seemed to be improving. He could be
-brought back to the hotel that evening. Aunt Mary had sat down by his
-bed and told him briefly but plainly of the happenings at the hotel the
-previous evening, and had extorted a feeble, amazed acquiescence in the
-astonishing turn which had been given to his career--an acquiescence
-which she had immediately communicated by telephone from Jennie's to
-Mayor Black.
-
-In the second place, the story of Norman's evening at Reiberg's was all
-over the city--not among the populace, of course, but among the
-politicians and business men and clubmen--the men who know things. Not
-only the story in _Tidbits_, which everybody seemed to have read and to
-have assigned unhesitatingly to Norman, but the further fact that from
-Reiberg's he had gone in the taxi to "a certain little flat"--that
-seemed to be the approved phrase,--and had spent the night there, and
-was still there. The simple truth, in short, was known. Rockwell had
-taken his cue perforce from Merriam's impulsive denial to Thompson and
-had flatly contradicted the whole story. Senator Norman had spent the
-evening, after his interviews with Mr. Crockett and with Mayor Black, at
-the hotel with his wife, and was there now, slightly indisposed with a
-severe cold which had threatened to turn into bronchitis. His downright
-assertions had, Rockwell believed, shaken the confident rumours and
-would probably delay any further publication of them for at least a day.
-But it was necessary to produce evidence.
-
-"We shall have to use you again to-night," he said to Merriam. "I have
-invited the Mayor and Mr. Wayward to dine with you here at the
-hotel--downstairs in the Peacock Cabaret."
-
-"Shall I have to play the Senator there?" gasped Merriam--"in public!"
-
-"Semi-public," said Rockwell. "I have reserved a table in an alcove.
-We shall put you in the corner. All the rest of us will be between you
-and the general gaze. Oh, we shall get away with it. It's much less
-dangerous than trying to impose at close range in a private interview on
-some one who really knows the Senator--as you did on Thompson this
-morning."
-
-"Does Mr. Wayward know?" asked Merriam.
-
-"Of the impersonation? Not yet. But Alicia shall prepare him in
-advance."
-
-Alicia nodded. "That's all right," she said. "Daddy will enjoy it.
-He'll think it's a huge joke."
-
-"Moreover," continued Rockwell, with rather apprehensive eyes on
-Merriam, "I have accepted an invitation for Senator Gorman to speak at
-the Reform League luncheon to-morrow."
-
-"Do they have luncheons and speeches every day?" asked Merriam, sparring
-for time, for of course he saw what was coming.
-
-"Not usually, but they've been having a series. To-morrow is the last
-one. It's the perfect opportunity for Norman to come out openly for the
-League. When the invitation came, I simply had to accept it."
-
-"But if George Norman isn't able to speak?" queried Alicia, fearlessly
-coming to the point.
-
-"Then you'll have to make the speech!" said Rockwell bluntly to Merriam.
-
-"But how can I?"
-
-"You were a debater in college."
-
-"Yes, but the speech itself----"
-
-"Oh, Aunt Mary will fix you up with a speech."
-
-Merriam turned to that silent mistress of the situation, sitting calmly
-in the senatorial armchair.
-
-"George is so very busy that I often write his speeches for him," she
-said, as if it were the most natural arrangement in the world. "I have
-several sketched out now. We can make a choice among them. I will
-write it out in full and you can learn it, or I will turn over the
-outline to you and you can work it up in your own words--if you have to
-make it."
-
-"You probably won't," Rockwell hastened to say. "Norman is really much
-better. After a comfortable night here at the hotel he will be all
-right. If he's a little hoarse, we can't help it. But you must stay
-over, you see," he added determinedly,--"to make sure. That speech must
-be made."
-
-"But my school!" cried Merriam.
-
-"You'll have to send another telegram," said Aunt Mary.
-
-"What's a day or two of school?" asked Rockwell impatiently, with a
-layman's insensibility to the pedagogical dogmas of absolute regularity
-and punctuality. "Besides, if you really were sick," he added more
-tactfully, "they would have to get along without you, wouldn't they?"
-
-"So much is at stake," said Aunt Mary. "George's future, and all that
-that may mean to the State and Nation. If we can bring him to throw the
-weight of his popularity and leadership on the right side!"
-
-"You can't desert us now, Mr. Merriam," cried Alicia. "When it means so
-much to Aunt Mary and Philip and Mollie June!"
-
-Crafty Alicia! Her guile was, of course, clearly apparent to Merriam.
-But it is perfectly possible to perceive that an influence is being
-deliberately brought to bear on one without being able to resist that
-influence.
-
-"Very well. I'll telegraph again," he said.
-
-"Better do it now," said Rockwell, promptly clinching this decision. He
-rose, went to the writing table, got out a telegraph form, and sat down.
-
-"What shall I write?"
-
-Merriam collected himself as best he could under Alicia's admiring,
-expectant eyes and Aunt Mary's steady regard.
-
-"Better," he dictated, "but doctor won't let me leave to-night. Expect
-to be down to-morrow night."
-
-"That's good," said Aunt Mary, in a tone of quiet approval which
-gratified Merriam more probably than he realised.
-
-Rockwell finished writing and turned in his chair.
-
-"I'll be going down in a few minutes. I'll send it then. Now you'll
-need to dress for dinner--Senator! Pack up your things too. After
-dinner you and I will leave the hotel together in a taxi. We shall drive
-over to the University Club. There we shall simply go up to the Library
-for a few minutes and then come down again, walk up Michigan Avenue for
-a block or two and catch another taxi and drive to the Nestor House.
-There you can register under your own name. Simpson will send your
-things over. I shall go on and get Norman and bring him back here. You
-see? Senator Norman leaves the hotel about nine o'clock with his new
-manager--me. Within an hour or so he returns, still in my company, and
-goes to his room. If he's all right, you can go down to Riceville on the
-morning train if you like. I'll come to see you before you go."
-
-"We'll _all_ go over to see you," said Alicia, with an unmistakable
-emphasis on the "all." "We shall have so much to thank you for!"
-
-Merriam did not reply to this cordial remark.
-
-"Why do we go to the University Club?" he asked.
-
-"And not directly to the other hotel?" said Rockwell. "Well, I'm afraid
-we may be rather closely watched. To tell the truth, I suspect that the
-driver of the taxi we take here may be questioned afterwards as to where
-he set us down. The University Club will tell them nothing."
-
-To Merriam's excited mood this explanation, with its hint of powerful
-hidden enemies intently watching every move which he and his friends
-could make, added a touch of piquancy to the situation that was nothing
-short of delightful.
-
-He could not well express this, however, and Rockwell, who was all
-business with no such romantic nonsense in his head, immediately sent
-them about their several parts. He himself was first to take Alicia to
-her waiting limousine.
-
-When Alicia and Rockwell had departed Merriam sought to return to
-his--the Senator's--bedroom. But Aunt Mary detained him.
-
-"Sit down, Mr. Merriam," she said, kindly enough but in a manner that
-demanded unquestioning obedience.
-
-Then she rose and entered Mollie June's bedroom but immediately
-returned.
-
-"Mollie June is dressing for dinner," she said. An instant's pause.
-Then, looking hard at Merriam, "She's a lovely child."
-
-Both the look and the final word provoked Merriam to a sort of
-resentment.
-
-"I don't believe she's as much of a child as you think," he said boldly.
-
-"It depends on the point of view, no doubt," said Aunt Mary drily.
-
-Then she began to ask him about himself, his family, his own life, on
-the farm of his boyhood, at college, and at Riceville--all those facts
-which Alicia had so much more tactfully elicited in the private dining
-room off the Peacock Cabaret the night before and some others in which
-Alicia had not been interested. Merriam had nothing to be ashamed of
-and spoke up promptly and manfully in his replies, wondering in the back
-of his mind the while what inscrutable thought or purpose prompted Aunt
-Mary in her catechising. He little dreamt that the whole course and
-happiness of his life turned on the showing he was able to make in this
-odd examination.
-
-There is no doubt that Aunt Mary--whatever her idea may have been--was
-satisfied. When at length she had no more questions to ask the
-expression of her eyes, though they still rested on him, was almost one
-of absence. She drew a deeper breath than was her wont--suggestive, at
-least, of a sigh.
-
-"You give a good account of yourself," she said. "You are worthy of the
-Norman blood."
-
-Greater praise than that no man could have from Aunt Mary, as Merriam
-dimly realised.
-
-"I wish George were more like you."
-
-Immediately she added, with a conscious return to dominating briskness:
-
-"You must dress. So must I."
-
-And she rose and without looking again at Merriam went into Mollie
-June's bedroom.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XVI*
-
- *THE SENATORIAL DINNER*
-
-
-At last, at twenty-five minutes after six, Merriam sank, exhausted but
-immaculate, into an easy chair and lit a cigarette, in an effort to
-compose his nerves and regain the _sang froid_ he needed for his
-imminent role of a particularly debonair senator of the United States
-acting as host to a brilliant dinner party.
-
-At half past six precisely, Aunt Mary knocked on his door and he opened
-that door and announced himself ready.
-
-Aunt Mary wore another black evening gown, very similar, in masculine
-eyes, to the one in which she had appeared the night before, except that
-it was less conspicuously burdened with jet. Tall and erect, with her
-gray hair plainly but carefully dressed, she looked every inch a
-senator's sister and--this would have pleased her--a Norman.
-
-Advancing into the sitting room, Merriam encountered Mollie June,
-standing again beside the bowl of roses. She was in pink--tulle over
-satin, though Merriam could not have described it so. But the vivid
-colour and the dainty softness of the fabric he could appreciate quite
-well enough, at least in their contiguity to the slender figure, white
-throat and shoulders, and charming complexion of Mollie June. There is
-no doubt that he looked a moment longer than he should. The debonair
-senatorial outside of him was moved to say, "How lovely you are!" But
-the Ricevillian pedagogue underneath blocked the utterance. Perhaps his
-eyes said it plainly enough to satisfy Mollie June, for she evinced no
-disappointment.
-
-"We must go right down, mustn't we?" she said, raising her eyes from the
-roses.
-
-"Yes," said Aunt Mary, in a tone of jarring briskness.
-
-A male figure which Merriam had not perceived stepped out of the
-background, moved to the hall door, and opened it. Merriam saw that it
-was Dr. Hobart, quite as point-device as himself and rather more at ease
-but not nearly so handsome (though of this, I assure you, Merriam never
-thought at all).
-
-Aunt Mary and Mollie June passed through the door.
-
-"Come along, Senator," said Dr. Hobart, in excellent spirits, and
-Merriam mechanically followed and mechanically paused and waited while
-the physician closed and locked the door.
-
-"This must be great fun for you," said Dr. Hobart as they went down the
-hall towards the elevators.
-
-"Yes," returned Merriam without conviction, his eyes on a girlish figure
-in pink that moved ahead of him. "Fun" did not strike him as exactly
-the word.
-
-Fortunately at this point a small incident occurred which served to
-bring Merriam out of the brown study--or perhaps we may say the roseate
-study--into which he had fallen.
-
-As they approached the elevator lobby he became aware of the pretty
-floor clerk who on the previous evening had been wearing Senator
-Norman's violets. He was, of course, entirely unmindful of the fact
-that on his way to Norman's rooms that morning he had passed her rudely
-by without a glance, but he did notice that this evening she wore no
-flowers and that she studiously avoided seeing him and smiled her best
-smile upon Dr. Hobart instead. That gentleman, with a shade too much
-alacrity, stepped aside so as to pass close to her desk and, leaning
-down, spoke to her. The pretty floor clerk, from the toss of her head
-and the pleased smile on Hobart's face, had said something saucy in
-reply.
-
-"Good enough," thought Merriam, as they all stepped into the elevator.
-"I'm glad she has more interests than one," and thought no more of the
-incident at the time.
-
-In a moment or two more they had reached the basement floor, which was
-their destination.
-
-Opposite the elevators on this floor was a small reception room or
-parlour, and here Senator Norman's other guests were awaiting
-him--Rockwell, Murray, Mayor Black, Alicia, and Alicia's father.
-
-To the last-named gentleman Merriam was immediately presented. He was a
-stoutish, jovial man of fifty or so, bald of pate and humorous of eye,
-and the amused particularity with which he surveyed Merriam and the
-gusto with which he addressed him as "Senator" showed both that Alicia
-had performed her task of enlightening him and that she had been right
-as to the attitude he would take.
-
-"Splendid!" he whispered to Merriam. "You would have fooled me all
-right," and he beamed delightedly.
-
-Alicia gave him only a minute. "They are ready," she said. "We are to
-go right in. You are to walk with me." (This last to Merriam.)
-
-In a moment, therefore, Merriam found himself escorting Alicia down a
-sort of central aisle among the tables of the Peacock Cabaret, behind an
-excessively urbane head waiter, conscious that the rest of his guests
-were making a more or less imposing procession after them, and intensely
-conscious of suspended conversation throughout the great restaurant and
-of countless curious eyes staring across rosebuds and water bottles at
-himself.
-
-"Say something to me," whispered Alicia. "You mustn't look
-self-conscious."
-
-Merriam glanced at her and realised for the first time that evening her
-vivid, vigorous, peony-like beauty.
-
-"What can I say," he asked smiling, "except 'How lovely you are'?" and
-he wondered why it was so easy to say this to Alicia when he had been
-unable to say it to Mollie June.
-
-"Bravo, Boy Senator!" applauded Alicia, and then they reached the haven
-of that alcove which Rockwell had promised.
-
-It was really a small square room quite separate from the main part of
-the Peacock Cabaret except that there was no wall between. The head
-waiter guided Merriam to the seat at the far end of the table. Thus
-when he sat down he would be facing the main dining room, visible to all
-its occupants, yet screened from them by the table and his own guests
-about that table. It was really an excellent device for displaying him
-in public and still protecting him from close inspection.
-
-In a moment the whole party had arrived and been seated.
-
-A canape was being served, and Alicia at his end of the table and her
-father at the other end were starting conversation. Merriam glanced
-across the board at Mollie June. For some reason a charming girl never
-looks more lovely than at table. She looked up and caught his gaze.
-Her face was grave. He thought she looked wistful. For a moment only he
-met her eyes, then turned to reply to a remark of Alicia's. Somehow his
-spirits soared. He plunged into the conversation with a zest which he
-had hardly known since his fraternity days. Mollie June said little,
-but she laughed at the stories and seemed to become excited and happy.
-She was content, perhaps, to enact the role of the gallery to which
-Merriam was playing with such excellent effect. As for Rockwell and
-Aunt Mary, they sat by in serene content: the affair was going well; as
-long as that was the case they need not exert themselves.
-
-The mildly uproarious party undoubtedly attracted the desired amount of
-attention from the main dining room. Eyes were turned and necks craned,
-and couples and groups that passed the alcove almost invariably slowed
-their steps to stare. Some dozens of men who had heard the stories of
-the real Norman's whereabouts were convinced that these were false, at
-least in part; by the witness of their own eyes they knew that the
-Senator was that evening at any rate in the bosom of his family at the
-hotel. They could be relied upon to assert as much in all parts of the
-city on the following day.
-
-Only one outsider ventured to intrude upon the party and submit Merriam
-to the ordeal of closer inspection, and he got no nearer than the length
-of the table. This was the Colonel Abbott whom Merriam had so
-perilously encountered at the very beginning of his play-acting the
-night before. Merriam remembered him vividly, called him by name, and
-replied cordially to his expressions of pleasure at finding him
-recovered from his threatened indisposition. So that danger passed, and
-the table, after a brief exchanging of relieved glances, recovered its
-gayety, perhaps with some accentuation.
-
-A little later came a reporter. Merriam professed that he had "nothing
-to say." Asked if it was true that he was to speak at the Reform League
-luncheon on the morrow, he replied, with an inner quailing but with
-outward composure, that he was.
-
-The reporter turned to Mr. Wayward. Was it true that he intended to
-make a contribution to the campaign fund of the Reform League? Mr.
-Wayward's joviality suffered an eclipse. His eyes fell. But on raising
-them he encountered a glance from his daughter that can only be
-described as stern, and promptly admitted that it was true.
-
-The reporter tried Rockwell, but the latter shook his head so
-indomitably that the interviewer at once abandoned him and passed to
-Mayor Black. That gentleman promptly and as it were automatically gave
-utterance to several eloquent phrases, too meaningless to be recorded.
-Even the reporter neglected to make notes of them, and looked about the
-table for other prey. Finding none, he excused himself with the remark,
-"I am making note of the names, of course," and disappeared.
-
-Once more the conspiratorial table drew a long breath and endeavoured to
-recover its festive mood, but before much progress had been made in that
-direction a bell boy came with a note addressed to Senator Norman and
-asking that he and Mr. Rockwell come to Room D, one of the private
-dining rooms.
-
-Merriam passed the note to Rockwell and then to Aunt Mary, and the three
-prime conspirators stared at one another. None of them knew the
-handwriting, which was poor and hurried and in pencil.
-
-"I'll go," said Rockwell. "You stay here."
-
-The rest of the party did not know what had happened, but in their
-situation the most trivial incident was, of course, sufficient to cause
-uneasiness. The conversation during Rockwell's absence was forced and
-fragmentary. In fact, it was almost a solo performance on Alicia's
-part. Merriam caught Mollie June's eyes upon him, and was grateful for
-their expression of self-unconscious solicitude.
-
-Presently the boy returned again with the same note, at the bottom of
-which was scribbled: "Come--Room D. Rockwell."
-
-Merriam showed it to Aunt Mary.
-
-"Is that his handwriting?"
-
-"Yes, it is."
-
-"Then I suppose I must go."
-
-He rose, murmured an "excuse me" to the table at large, and made his way
-towards the open end of the alcove. As he did so he glanced at Mollie
-June. Alarm stood in her eyes. Coming opposite her chair, he bent down
-and said gently:
-
-"It's all right. I probably shan't be long."
-
-It was perhaps a little too much in the tone and manner that Mollie
-June's real husband might properly have used. Mollie June herself did
-not seem to notice this; she appeared duly comforted. But Mr. Wayward,
-at her left, undoubtedly stared after Merriam with an odd expression in
-his genial eyes.
-
-Following the bell boy, Merriam tried hard to think what might be in
-store for him. "Thompson" and "Crockett" were the only ideas his blank
-mind could muster. Had they discovered the trick and come to threaten
-him with exposure? Well, Rockwell would be present. He leaned heavily
-on Rockwell.
-
-The boy stopped before a curtained door.
-
-"This is it, sir," he said and waited expectantly.
-
-Merriam fumblingly produced a dime, and the boy departed. Drawing a
-deep breath, he pushed aside the curtain and entered Room D.
-
-To his great relief the only persons present were Rockwell and Simpson.
-They were both standing, beside a bare table. Merriam vaguely
-remembered that Simpson had not appeared in connection with the serving
-of the last two or three courses.
-
-"Now tell it again," said Rockwell promptly.
-
-The waiter looked steadily at Merriam.
-
-"It's this way, sir," he said. "Mr. Thompson, as was the Senator's
-manager until this morning, has found out where the Senator really is,
-at----" the man looked away. "Jennie's," he finished, without
-expression in his tone. "There's a girl she lives with, Margery Milton,
-who's a milliner's assistant at one of the department stores. He got it
-from her. Straight from her he came here to have dinner with Mr.
-Crockett, out in the Cabaret. When I saw them come in, I turned your
-party over to another man and served them myself. I managed to hear a
-lot of what they said. Mr. Crockett had learned of your dinner party,
-of course. Putting that together with what Mr. Thompson had got from
-Margery, they saw the game. Mr. Crockett would hardly believe it at
-first. But Mr. Thompson means to make sure. He's going to Jennie's
-himself about ten o'clock to-night--they have some kind of a committee
-first,--and force his way in, if necessary, and see the Senator himself.
-Then they'll have proof, you see. I thought I'd better let you and Mr.
-Rockwell know."
-
-"You did just right," said Rockwell warmly, "and we'll make it worth
-your while."
-
-He turned abruptly to the younger man.
-
-"Merriam! You're the only one who can save us in this fix."
-
-"How?" said Merriam, to whom it seemed that all was lost.
-
-"Listen, man. You go back to our table and excuse yourself and me.
-'Important business.' Don't tell them anything more. Not even Aunt
-Mary. We haven't time. Better bring Murray. We may need an extra man,
-and we can trust him best. We three will take a taxi at once. We shall
-have to circle about a bit, to throw off possible trailers. But in less
-than an hour we'll be at Jennie's. You shall take Norman's place there,
-and we'll take Norman and bring him back to the hotel, to his room.
-Just as we planned, only a bit sooner. When Thompson arrives, Jennie
-shall let him in. He'll insist on seeing you. Let him. You're not
-Senator Norman. Tell him so. Jennie shall tell him so, too. He'll see
-it himself, of course, as soon as he looks close with his eyes open. You
-and Jennie must make him think you played off the resemblance on this
-Margery Milton for a joke. We'll fix her, too, of course. You'd better
-tell him your real name, so he can look you up if he wants to. He won't
-expose you in Riceville. He'll have no motive to. And he won't think
-anything of your little escapade in itself. You came to Chicago on
-school business--went out to see the sights--got a little more liquor
-than you were used to. Your taxi driver took you to some dance hall.
-He'll interpret 'Reiberg's.' You stayed there a while--don't know what
-you did--met Jennie there--and she brought you home. You were pretty
-sick in the morning and stayed over all day: You see? It all hangs
-together, and relieves Norman entirely of the Reiberg incident and
-Jennie, and cinches his blameless presence at the hotel all last night
-and all to-day. It'll save everything! Better than we planned.
-Couldn't be better!"
-
-Rockwell had worked himself up to exultant enthusiasm.
-
-Merriam's emotions while this new plot was unfolded were sufficiently
-complex. There was an opaque background of sheer bewilderment. There
-was also a sharp sense of alarm at the thought of having his own name
-appear in this business. But other sentiments, less acute individually,
-but of some potency none the less, joined their voices with Rockwell's
-to silence that alarm. There was the mere love of adventure, of playing
-a dangerous game, which is strong in any healthy young man. Then there
-was the thought of Mollie June: he would be doing it for her--making a
-real sacrifice, of his reputation, possibly of his position, his
-pedagogical career, for her sake. And, oddly enough, quite
-simultaneously with this thought of Mollie June, there was a
-recollection of "Jennie's" voice over the telephone. He was not
-conscious that he was curious to see "Jennie," but I am afraid he was.
-
-Scarcely half a minute had passed when Rockwell, eagerly scanning his
-face, cried, "You'll go!"
-
-"Yes," said Merriam, looking at Simpson's impassive countenance and
-surprised at his own words, "I suppose I will."
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XVII*
-
- *A DEVIOUS JOURNEY*
-
-
-Rockwell, as usual, gave Merriam no time for reconsideration.
-
-"Go and make your excuses at the table then."
-
-But Merriam was still looking at Simpson. He had perceived that the
-impassivity of the waiter's countenance covered a blank misery.
-
-"Simpson," he said, "we'll try to see that this works out to your
-advantage--at Jennie's. Shake on that." And, in violation of all codes
-on which the social system rests, he held out his hand as one man to
-another.
-
-Simpson, much more rigorously trained in those codes than Merriam had
-been, hesitated, glanced at Rockwell. But a light came into his eyes.
-He seized the hand, gripped it, gave one spasmodic shake.
-
-"Thank you, sir!" he said.
-
-He dropped the hand and as quickly as possible regained his servitorial
-manner.
-
-Merriam smiled at him and then spoke to Rockwell:
-
-"Where shall I join you--Murray and I?"
-
-"At the Ladies' Entrance," Rockwell replied. "It's less likely to be
-watched than the other."
-
-Merriam turned and passed through the curtained doorway, down the hall,
-and along one side of the Peacock Cabaret. The curtain being up on the
-small stage and the moderately comely demoiselles of the chorus
-executing a dance which involved a liberal display of white tights, he
-reached his alcove comparatively unnoticed.
-
-He stopped beside Mollie June's chair, which was nearest the open side
-of the alcove. All the members of the dinner party regarded him
-anxiously; Aunt Mary's face was more than usually grim. Carefully
-pitching his voice so that it should be audible to all at the table yet
-should not carry to the main dining room without, he said:
-
-"I am tremendously sorry to have to desert this pleasant company, but
-Mr. Rockwell and I are called away on important business. We should be
-very glad if you will come too, Father Murray.--Can you come at once?"
-he added as the priest stared.
-
-Aunt Mary's lips opened.
-
-"I'll explain later," said Merriam hurriedly.
-
-As he spoke, however, he realised that no opportunity to "explain later"
-would probably be afforded him. Alicia had said they "all" would go to
-see him in the morning at the Nestor House. They could not "all" come to
-Jennie's.
-
-He looked down at Mollie June. She was looking up at him. His view of
-her from above--the contour of her face and throat, the recalcitrant
-wave of her soft hair, the brightness of her lifted eyes--might have
-moved older and colder blood than Merriam's. He was close enough to
-catch a faint, warm sense of her in the air. He desired to envelop her
-in love. What he might do he could not resist. He laid his hand gently
-over one of hers that rested on the edge of the table and bent to her
-ear.
-
-"Mr. Rockwell will tell you to-morrow what I have done," he whispered.
-"It is for your sake, Mollie--June."
-
-He straightened up. He was not flushed outwardly. He looked almost
-cold. Father Murray was making his way down the side of the table.
-
-"Good night, all," said Merriam. "This way, Father Murray."
-
-He glanced once more at Mollie June--his last sight of her, he thought.
-Her face was rosy and her eyes glistened. It was a picture for which a
-man--a very young man, at least--might do anything, even sacrifice his
-love. He smiled at her almost gaily, turned, and passed out of the
-alcove, Father Murray following.
-
-They skirted the sides of the Peacock Cabaret in an effort to reach the
-exit as little observed as possible. Unfortunately, before they
-attained that goal, the curtain of the small stage descended, the white
-legs of the chorus, kicking at it as it fell, were hidden from the
-attentive eyes of the male diners, and not a few of these observed the
-famous senator's escape. This probably mattered little, however,
-because of Father Murray. The well-known High Churchman was enough to
-shield the name of Norman. He could hardly be bound for Reiberg's, or
-even, it would be argued, for "a certain little flat," in Father
-Murray's company.
-
-They got their coats from the checkroom, went up the stairs to the first
-floor, and made a detour through passages to the Ladies' Entrance.
-
-Rockwell was already there with a taxicab. He motioned to them to enter
-it.
-
-Merriam was a little surprised, and Father Murray probably more so, to
-find Simpson already within. Father Murray greeted him with clerical
-suavity. Merriam said nothing. He was listening to Rockwell's colloquy
-with the chauffeur:
-
-"This cab will probably be followed. Your first job is to shake off
-pursuit. Circle around through the Loop--twist and turn--until you're
-absolutely sure you've lost anybody who is after us. Then make for the
-Eighteenth Street Station of the Alley L. If there's no one behind us
-when you get there, it will be worth twenty-five dollars to you above
-the fare."
-
-"Right, sir," said the man. "Jump in, sir."
-
-Rockwell stepped in and slammed the door, seating himself with Simpson,
-his back to the driver. In a moment he was staring intently through the
-peephole window in the back of the taxi.
-
-"See!" he said.
-
-Merriam, turning to look over his shoulder, perceived a yellow cab about
-sixty feet behind them, also starting, at about the same pace as their
-own.
-
-They went west to Fifth Avenue and turned north along the car tracks
-under the Elevated. A moment later the yellow cab also turned north on
-the car tracks.
-
-They swerved east on Randolph Street. For a minute or two the yellow
-cab did not appear. It must have been caught behind some car or truck.
-But presently it rounded the corner and sprinted till it was again
-within about thirty yards of them, when it slowed down to their own
-pace.
-
-Rockwell spoke through the tube to the chauffeur:
-
-"That yellow cab!"
-
-"I'll lose 'em!" the man replied, with reassuring confidence.
-
-At the second corner he turned north again and sped across the Clark
-Street Bridge. The yellow cab also had business north of the river.
-
-Their subsequent maneuvers were at first decidedly puzzling to Merriam
-and his fellow passengers, with the possible exception of Simpson. They
-sped around and around a rectangle of streets enclosing half a dozen
-squares, with one of its sides only one block from the River. On the
-shorter sides they sometimes lost the yellow cab, but on the longer
-stretches it always appeared in full and open chase behind them.
-
-"What the devil!" cried Rockwell as their driver turned west for the
-fourth time on the southern, side of the rectangle--the street nearest
-the River.
-
-Simpson spoke: "He's all right. It's the bridge trick."
-
-No further explanation was necessary. Their chauffeur suddenly swerved
-south on Dearborn Street, making in a burst of speed for the River. The
-bridge bell was jangling its warning that traffic must stop for the
-opening of the bridge to let a steamer pass. Theirs was the last
-vehicle on the bridge. The bars dropped behind them. Looking back
-through the peephole window, our passengers had the satisfaction of
-seeing the yellow cab caught behind the bars, unable to follow them,
-unable even, because of other vehicles crowding behind, to turn out and
-make a detour to another bridge.
-
-Rockwell excitedly seized the tube. "Good work!" he called. "I'll give
-you another ten for that."
-
-"Thank you, sir," came the complacent reply.
-
-With a sigh of relaxing tension Merriam sank back in his corner,
-abandoning the peephole.
-
-"Who do you suppose it was?" he asked.
-
-"Thompson?"
-
-"Oh, no, not Thompson himself. One of his henchmen. He and Norman have
-all kinds of assistants!"
-
-"Where are we going?" asked Father Murray.
-
-Rockwell laughed. "I'd almost forgotten that you don't know yet. I'll
-tell you," and he entered upon an explanation of Thompson's discovery
-and proposed method of verification and their own counterplot.
-
-Father Murray was feebly protesting against the difficulties and dangers
-of the counterplot, but these complaints were interrupted by the
-stopping of the taxi. They had reached the Eighteenth Street Station of
-the Elevated.
-
-Rockwell looked quickly through the peephole window and then opened the
-door and jumped out. The others followed. They scanned the street in
-both directions. There was no other taxicab in sight.
-
-Rockwell stepped up to the smiling chauffeur, asked the amount of the
-fare, and paid it with the thirty-five dollars bonus.
-
-"You did the trick very neatly," he said. "Now scoot!"
-
-"Thank you, sir. Yes, sir."
-
-There was still no trace of curiosity in the man's tone or glance.
-
-"Come!" said Rockwell, and he led them to the entrance of the Elevated
-Station.
-
-At Forty-Seventh Street they left the Elevated and, walking to the
-corner, waited for a cross-town surface car.
-
-"What's the idea?" Merriam asked, his mind becoming active again.
-
-"Well," said Rockwell, "the first thing our late chauffeur will do after
-getting back to town will be to gather in another twenty-five dollars or
-maybe more for telling some one of Thompson's men where he left us. So
-it's best to muss up our trail a bit more before we strike Jennie's."
-
-He was hailing an east-bound car.
-
-As they sat silent again inside, Merriam's mind took its cue from
-Rockwell's last word. "Jennie's!" Phrases from his one brief telephone
-dialogue with Jennie sounded in his ear, oddly clear and melodious:
-
-"Georgie, boy! Don't you know me?--You ought to!" with a thrilling
-little laugh. "You must be careful, Georgie," in a lowered tone. "Can
-you come anyway?--You'll telephone again?--Georgie, boy!" and the sound
-of a kiss!
-
-These phrases--surely nothing in themselves--echoed in his mind with the
-same unaccountable piquancy and warmth with which they had first come to
-him over the telephone. He flushed a little, sitting there in the
-stuffy, bumping, jangling car, as he recalled the way he had
-involuntarily "played up" to them. He had promised to go to her if he
-could get away, to telephone her again if he could. That was mere
-trickery and deceit, a part of the game he was playing; that was all
-right. But his final whispered "Dearie, good night!" Had that been
-necessary? He remembered Rockwell's dry comment: "You don't need much
-prompting!" But his thoughts ran away with him again. Now he was going
-to see her--to spend a night in her apartment. What would she be
-like--tall or short, slender like Mollie June or plump like Alicia, fair
-or dark, with blue eyes or brown or black, curly hair or straight? He
-could not frame an image that satisfied him as the instrument of that
-voice.
-
-"Well, what is it to me?" he demanded roughly of himself, suddenly
-realising the tenor of his meditations. "See here, my boy, you must be
-careful. She's probably a regular chorus girl--or worse." (But he did
-not really believe that of her.) "She's nothing whatever to me," he
-asserted sternly to his truant fancy. "She belongs to--Simpson. And I
-belong to Mollie June."
-
-The car stopped at last, and Rockwell was getting up.
-
-When they had descended into the street Merriam found that they were at
-the end of the line by the Lake.
-
-"Illinois Central next," said Rockwell, grinning, and marched them to
-the Forty-Seventh Street Station of that railway. None of the others
-spoke.
-
-Their guide bought tickets to the City. "Are we going back to the Loop,
-then?" thought Merriam.
-
-In a moment they were on the platform. Merriam walked back and forth
-apart from the others, drawing deep breaths of the Lake air and looking
-up at the stars, dimly bright in the April night. "I belong to Mollie
-June," he said firmly to himself.
-
-Presently one of the odd little suburban trains drew up, and they
-entered.
-
-But they had scarcely sat down and yielded up their tickets when
-Rockwell routed them out--at Forty-Third Street. Evidently his buying
-tickets clear to the City had been a part of his elaborate ruse.
-
-Rockwell went at once to a telephone to call up a neighbouring garage.
-
-Merriam took a cigarette and lighted it and again walked up and down.
-His thoughts now ran unbidden upon Mollie June. Images of her crowded
-his mind: Mollie June rosy and bright-eyed as he had seen her last at
-the dinner table in the alcove of the Peacock Cabaret; Mollie June by
-his "sick" bed, standing over him after he had impulsively declared his
-love, her hand hovering above his hair, tears upon her face, turning
-bravely away from him; Mollie June above the roses, as he had first seen
-her that morning--was it only that morning?--lifting the wet stems from
-the bowl; Mollie June confronting Mayor Black, refusing in angered
-innocence to leave the room; Mollie June in the Peacock Cabaret the
-night before; Mollie June in the front row in "Senior Algebra" back in
-Riceville. Ah, he _did_ belong to Mollie June, heart and soul. There was
-no doubt of that, and all the Jennies in the world were of no account
-whatever.
-
-So it was a young man in a very laudable frame of mind indeed--waiving
-the fact that Mollie June was a married woman!--whom Rockwell presently
-bundled into the taxi he had summoned. Father Murray was already
-inside. Rockwell followed, leaving Simpson to speak to the chauffeur.
-
-It puzzled Merriam to find Simpson thus placed in command, as it were,
-and his thoughts came back to the present adventure. He listened
-closely.
-
-"Stop first at Rankin's Hardware Store," Simpson said to the chauffeur,
-"on Forty-Third Street."
-
-In a couple of minutes, it seemed, they stopped before Rankin's
-emporium. Simpson alone descended. The other three remained in the
-taxicab, Rockwell openly smiling at the puzzled inquiry on Merriam's
-face but vouchsafing no enlightenment. Merriam would not ask questions.
-
-The hardware shop was closed, but there was a light within and a man.
-Simpson pounded at the door till he gained admittance, and in a few
-minutes returned bearing--a small stepladder!
-
-"What on earth----?" The words were almost starting from Merriam's
-lips, but he managed to swallow them, and listened again for Simpson's
-direction to the driver.
-
-It was an address: "612 Dalton Place." That meant nothing to Merriam.
-
-Again a brief drive, Merriam laboriously cogitating, with bewildered
-eyes on the small ladder--an affair of some six steps,--which Simpson
-had brought into the cab and was holding upright between them.
-
-Father Murray asked the question which Merriam had so manfully (and
-youthfully) repressed:
-
-"What's that for?"
-
-"You'll see," said Rockwell, grinning, enjoying the mystery.
-
-Simpson remained as silent and grave as an undertaker.
-
-The taxicab had turned several corners and covered perhaps a couple of
-miles of streets. Now it slowed down, stopped.
-
-"There ain't no 612," said the driver through the tube.
-
-Rockwell took command again.
-
-"Isn't there?" he said. "Let's see."
-
-He got out. Peering through the open door of the taxicab, Merriam could
-see that the house before which they had stopped was numbered 608.
-
-"612's a vacant lot," he heard the chauffeur say.
-
-"So it seems," Rockwell replied. "Well, we'll get out here anyway."
-
-Merriam eagerly took this cue, and the other two followed, Simpson
-bringing his ladder. Rockwell was handing a couple of green bills to
-the driver.
-
-"Drive on opposite where 612 ought to be," he said, "and wait. We'll be
-back by and by."
-
-"This way," he added, and started with Merriam and Father Murray down
-the street past the vacant lot. Simpson, carrying his small stepladder
-as unobtrusively as possible at his side, followed laggingly behind.
-
-The square beyond the next avenue seemed to be occupied entirely by a
-huge block of apartments. They did not cross the avenue but turned the
-corner and walked on down one side of the great flat building but on the
-opposite side of the street. Their side held a miscellany of small
-detached houses.
-
-Merriam glanced at Rockwell. He was slowing his steps and seemed to be
-watching a couple of men who were moving in the same direction as their
-own on the other side of the street immediately under the apartments.
-
-A moment later these two men turned in at one of the entrances of the
-flat building. After perhaps twenty feet more Rockwell glanced over his
-shoulder. Merriam involuntarily did likewise. Half a block behind them
-was Simpson with his ladder. There was no one else in sight.
-
-Rockwell stopped for a second, then said, "Come!" and quickly crossed
-the street and entered another door of the flat building.
-
-Within the vestibule he stopped again.
-
-"We must wait for Simpson," he said.
-
-He began reading the names below the battery of bells. Merriam and
-Father Murray stared at each other.
-
-In a moment Simpson joined them with his ladder. Rockwell promptly
-opened the inner door of the vestibule and proceeded to ascend the
-stairs. Simpson trudged after him, and Merriam and the priest followed
-perforce.
-
-They reached the second floor and the third and continued on up to the
-fourth, which was the top floor.
-
-Arriving there, Merriam found Rockwell pointing to a sort of trapdoor in
-the ceiling above the landing at the head of the stairs.
-
-"Right!" he whispered.
-
-Simpson calmly set his ladder down, separated its legs, and planted it
-firmly beneath the trap. He and Rockwell paid no attention to the doors
-of the two apartments which opened off the landing within a few feet of
-them. Simpson amended the ladder and, exerting his strength, pushed the
-trap door up. It moved with a grating sound, startlingly loud in their
-quasi-burglarious situation The night air rushed in. The trap gave upon
-the roof of the building.
-
-Simpson did not hesitate but pulled himself up on to the roof.
-
-Rockwell followed.
-
-"You're to come too," he said as he looked down at Merriam gleefully and
-winked. He was evidently pleased with himself. "You wait here, Father
-Murray. Remember, if any one comes you're a roof inspector. That's
-next door to a sky pilot anyway!"
-
-The priest groaned but made no protest, well knowing, doubtless, that
-rebellion now would avail him naught, and Merriam quickly followed
-Rockwell on to the roof.
-
-It was a flat tar-and-gravel roof--not an unpleasant place to be in the
-starry April night. They circled about chimneys and miscellaneous pipe
-heads and stepped across brick ledges, which seemed to separate
-different sections of the building from one another.
-
-Presently they were approaching the opposite side of the building,
-having circled the interior court and light wells. They came to another
-trap-door, a twin of the one by which they had ascended.
-
-Simpson was about to open this second trap when Rockwell spoke:
-
-"Wait a minute!"
-
-Stooping lower and lower till at last he seemed to be almost sitting on
-his heels as he walked, he made his way to the edge of the roof on the
-new street and peeped over the parapet--a dozen feet perhaps beyond the
-trapdoor. For a moment only he looked, then returned in the same
-cautious and laborious manner.
-
-"We were right," he said to Simpson.
-
-"Watchers?" Simpson asked.
-
-"Two of them. And half way down the block a taxi."
-
-But now Simpson was carefully raising the trap-door. After listening for
-a minute he put his head down and looked.
-
-"Coast is clear," he reported.
-
-"Go ahead, then," said Rockwell.
-
-So Simpson put his legs down inside, hung, and dropped into the
-vestibule. Rockwell and Merriam followed.
-
-Straightening himself up inside, Merriam found Rockwell facing the door
-of the right-hand apartment.
-
-"This is Jennie's!" he whispered.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XVIII*
-
- *JENNIE*
-
-
-Rockwell knocked twice. A girl with a thin, dark face peeped out.
-
-"Hello, Margery," said Rockwell.
-
-"Oh, how d'you do?" said the girl, recognizing the speaker. Relief was
-mingled in her tone with continuing caution. "Who's with you?"
-
-"Friends," said Rockwell. "Mr. Merriam, the Senator's double. And
-Simpson."
-
-"Simpson can't come here!" said Margery sharply.
-
-Merriam glanced at Simpson and was amazed to see how moved he was. He
-had a sense that the man could hardly keep himself from trembling.
-
-"He's come to help take Norman away," said Rockwell. "He need go no
-farther than the hall. Come, Margery, let us in. We can't stand here
-all night. I'll explain to both of you inside. I'm George's friend,
-you know."
-
-"Well!" Still unwillingly Margery released the chain and moved back,
-opening the door for them.
-
-As they stepped inside she stared at Merriam.
-
-"The devil!" she exclaimed.
-
-"No," said the young man, "my name's Merriam. How do you do, Miss
-Milton?"
-
-He looked at Margery almost as curiously as she was looking at him. He
-was really as innocent as Mollie June--more so, in fact, not being
-married,--and Margery was the first member of the demi-monde or the near
-demimonde with whom he had ever had personal contact. He found her
-disappointing. She was thin to the point of angularity, in a trying
-yellow negligee, with straight black hair, black eyes that were
-unpleasantly direct, and a lean dark face that was undeniably hard.
-
-For a moment only she stared. Then she shut the door and spoke to
-Simpson:
-
-"You stay here!"
-
-"Yes," said Simpson, with more than servitorial humility.
-
-Rockwell was advancing into the sitting room, which opened immediately
-off the tiny hall, and Merriam, feeling himself dismissed by Miss
-Milton, followed.
-
-Merriam's sole first impression of the sitting room was of a soft,
-rather agreeable harmony in yellow. The wall paper, the hangings, the
-upholstery of chairs and davenport, the shades of lights were all in
-mild tints of that pleasant colour. Probably Margery's yellow negligee
-was intended to fit into this ensemble.
-
-But he had no time for detailed observation. For as they stepped forward
-the yellow portieres at one side of the room parted, and another girl
-appeared between them--undoubtedly Jennie.
-
-This time he was surprised but hardly disappointed. The figure between
-the portieres was that of a stage parlour maid--just the right height
-for a soubrette and just pleasantly, youthfully slender, yet rounded, in
-a trim-fitting dress of some black material, cut rather low at the
-throat and edged with white, with a ridiculously small, purely
-ornamental, white apron with pockets. Black-silk-stockinged ankles and
-black, high-heeled satin pumps completed a picture that was both chic
-and demure. Merriam remembered that it was as a parlour maid that
-Norman had first known Jennie and guessed that this costume had been
-assumed for his benefit.
-
-In a moment the portieres closed behind her. She was looking at the
-older man, having barely glanced at Merriam.
-
-"How do, Mr. Rockwell," she said.
-
-Merriam, almost with alarm, recognised the tones that had so piqued him
-over the telephone.
-
-Then she turned to him.
-
-"This is---- Gee, but you're like him! I wouldn't have believed it."
-
-"Miss Higgins, Mr. Merriam," said Rockwell tardily.
-
-Merriam responded awkwardly:
-
-"How do you do, Miss----"
-
-"'Miss Jennie' will do," interrupted Jennie.
-
-(Merriam remembered uncomfortably how Mollie June had hit upon a similar
-"compromise.")
-
-"I ain't partial to 'Higgins,'" Jennie added. "I'm thinking of changing
-it to 'Montmorency.' Wouldn't 'Jennie Montmorency' be nice, Mr.
-Rockwell?"
-
-"I don't think it fits very well," said Rockwell. "You'd better change
-it to Simpson."
-
-Jennie coloured. She coloured easily, as Merriam was to learn. Now
-that she had turned again to Rockwell he had a chance to look at her
-face. She was an exceedingly pretty blonde. Her throat was attractively
-rounded, her shoulders also. Those shoulders might be unpleasant when
-she was older and stouter, but at present they were charming. Her chin
-and cheeks were also daintily full--quite the opposite of Margery
-Milton's. The cheeks were pink, slightly heightened with rouge perhaps
-but not with paint. The eyes were softly, brightly blue. The hair fair
-and smoothly wavy, if one may attempt to express a nuance by combining
-contradictory terms. In short, she was, as some of her admirers
-undoubtedly expressed it, "not a bit hard to look at."
-
-For a moment Jennie's colour flooded. Then came her retort to Rockwell:
-
-"Mind your own business," she said.
-
-The words were sharp, but somehow the tone was not. The voice was still
-soft and--warm. It is the only word. It was the voice one might
-attribute to a kitten, if a kitten were gifted with articulate speech.
-
-Rockwell only laughed. At the same moment Margery Milton entered from
-the hall, where she had presumably been impressing upon Simpson the
-necessity of remaining in strict hiding.
-
-Jennie glanced at her friend.
-
-"Well," she said, "may as well sit down."
-
-She dropped into a chair and crossed one leg over the other.
-
-"You've come to take Georgie away," she continued as the others sat
-down.
-
-"Yes," said Rockwell. "Listen, Jennie. You too, Margery," and he began
-to explain the new situation which had resulted primarily from Margery's
-confidences to Thompson. He did not soften this point in his relation.
-
-"See what your gabbling's done," said Jennie, without anger, to her
-friend when he had finished. "You always talk too much."
-
-"I can talk if I please," said Margery sullenly.
-
-"It will pay you better to keep still this time," said Rockwell.
-
-"Pay me? How much?" demanded Margery promptly.
-
-"Say a hundred dollars."
-
-"A hundred----! I'm mum as a stone image. When do I get it, though?"
-
-"Here's twenty now on account." Rockwell held out a yellow-backed bill,
-which Margery quickly accepted. "You get the rest when this is all
-over."
-
-"How do I know I get the rest?"
-
-"Shut up, Marge," said Jennie. "You know Mr. Rockwell."
-
-"We've no time to lose," Rockwell continued, looking at his watch.
-"It's twenty-five minutes to ten now. Thompson said ten, but he might
-come a bit sooner. We must get Norman away at once. You understand that
-you're to let Mr. Merriam go to bed in his stead. When Thompson comes
-you must admit him. You can pretend to be unwilling to do so, but you
-must let him in without too much fuss. You're to tell him that Norman's
-not here and has not been here--that there's a man here who looks
-tremendously like Norman and that at first you fooled Margery into
-thinking it was Norman."
-
-While Rockwell was issuing these instructions Jennie's cheeks had grown
-hot.
-
-"I'm not that kind," she cried. "I've never had any one but George."
-Margery also glowered.
-
-"I know that, my dear," said Rockwell, mendaciously perhaps but
-promptly. "But you've got to do what I tell you to-night. You don't
-care what a fellow like Thompson thinks. He always thinks the worst
-anyhow. It's to save George. He'll be ruined unless we can fool
-Thompson completely to-night. It's for George," he repeated. "You'd do
-a lot for George."
-
-Jennie's colour was subsiding. She had uncrossed her legs and was
-sitting erect. She looked fixedly at Rockwell.
-
-"I _have_ done a lot for him," she said.
-
-"I know," said Rockwell. "And you'll do this to-night." He was using
-his most persuasive tones.
-
-Jennie stole an almost timid glance at Merriam.
-
-The latter's youthful chivalry was aroused. He was filled with pity for
-her, mingled with something like admiration on account of her
-prettiness. He saw her, more or less correctly, as a pathetic victim of
-real love and a false social system. He smiled at her reassuringly.
-
-"It'll be all right," he said. "I shan't trouble you at all."
-
-Jennie's glance lingered on his face--the face that was so much like
-Norman's. She saw him for the clean, innocent, naive boy that he was.
-He was what George Norman might once have been, long years ago. I am
-afraid that something akin to interest crept into her look. She dropped
-her eyes.
-
-"All right," she said curtly to Rockwell. "I suppose I will."
-
-"Jennie, you're a fool!" cried Margery.
-
-"Shut up, Marge," said Jennie, with whom this seemed to be a frequent
-locution.
-
-Rockwell had already risen.
-
-"Is George dressed?" he asked.
-
-"No," said Jennie. "He's too sick."
-
-"Come, then," said Rockwell to Merriam. "We must help him into his
-things."
-
-He crossed the small room and passed through the yellow portieres.
-Having been at the apartment earlier in the day with Aunt Mary, he was
-acquainted with its geography.
-
-Merriam rose to follow, but he felt that something more ought to be said
-to relieve the half-hostile awkwardness of the situation. Jennie's eyes
-were still cast down.
-
-"Is he pretty sick?" he asked as he moved across the room. He was not
-much concerned about Senator Norman, but he could think of no other
-remark.
-
-Jennie raised her eyes and looked at him--an unreadable glance.
-
-"Pretty sick," she said, almost indifferently.
-
-Merriam paused a moment before the portieres, looking back, still
-meeting her eyes.
-
-Then he turned his own away and pushed the portieres aside. He found
-himself in a dining room, done entirely in blue, as the sitting room was
-in yellow. Rockwell was already opening a door on the further side.
-Merriam quickened his steps and was close behind the older man in
-entering a small white bedroom.
-
-On a single bed therein lay Senator George Norman. Evidently he had
-heard their voices in the sitting room, for he had raised himself on his
-elbow.
-
-He and Merriam stared at each other in the amazement that is inevitable
-to two men who find themselves really bearing a striking physical
-resemblance to each other, however much they may have been forewarned.
-We are so accustomed to the idea that each of us has a sort of exclusive
-copyright on his own particular exterior that we cannot seriously
-believe in anything approaching a replica unless actually confronted
-with it.
-
-The Senator did not look especially "boyish" as he lay there. His
-ruffled hair was indeed practically untouched with gray, but his cheeks
-were haggard and feverish, and there were many little wrinkles about his
-mouth and eyes. For all that Merriam could hardly believe he was not
-looking into a mirror. The experience was hardly pleasant for either
-man. "This is what I shall be like some time when I am old and ill,"
-Merriam thought; and the Senator can hardly have escaped the bitter
-reflection of the man who has left many years behind him: "That is what
-I was once." Looking closer, Merriam could detect slight differences.
-The lips and nostrils of his distinguished relative were undoubtedly a
-little fuller than his own, and--yes, he surely was not flattering
-himself in thinking that the chin was rounder and weaker. But above all
-such trivial points the likeness rose overwhelmingly, incredibly
-complete. Merriam even recognised a similarity of movement as the sick
-man impatiently twisted himself on the bed.
-
-Rockwell was standing silent, also no doubt inspecting the resemblance
-of which he had made such remarkable use.
-
-The Senator was the first to find his tongue.
-
-"So you're my virtuous double," he said, with a sort of petulant scorn.
-
-"The voice, too!" Rockwell thought. He almost dreaded to hear Merriam's
-reply, which would echo the very quality and timbre of the other's
-speech, as if he were mocking him. But Merriam did not seem to notice.
-The fact is one cannot judge the sound of one's own voice nor appreciate
-the similarity in another's tones or in an imitation.
-
-"I'm the double," Merriam was saying.
-
-For a moment longer the Senator stared. Then he laughed. He evidently
-laughed more easily than Merriam, and somewhat differently. Merriam
-made a mental note that if he should be involved in any further
-impersonation he must be careful of his laugh.
-
-"Well, it's rather convenient just this minute," said Norman, none too
-courteously, "though it may be damned inconvenient in the end."
-
-"We'll help you dress," said Rockwell. "We've come to take you to the
-hotel, you know."
-
-"Yes, I know that all right," said Norman. "If I'm to be a damned
-reformer, I must get out of this." He laughed again. "Hand me those
-trousers, will you?"
-
-He put his legs out of the bed. He had already dressed himself as far
-as his shirt. Then he had apparently given the job up and got back into
-bed.
-
-"I'm weak as a kitten," he continued, "and I've the deuce of a fever,
-but I guess I can make it. You've a taxi, of course?"
-
-"Yes," said Rockwell.
-
-He did not tell Norman that the road to the taxi lay through two
-trapdoors and across a roof. Neither did he mention the fact that
-Merriam was to stay at Jennie's or allude to Thompson's coming. Perhaps
-he feared that if Norman knew of Thompson's approach he would prefer to
-stay where he was and join forces with him again.
-
-In a very few minutes Norman was fully dressed--in the evening clothes
-in which he had left the hotel the night before, on his way, as he
-supposed, to Mayor Black's. Rockwell tied his white bow for him.
-
-During the process of dressing he and Merriam were continually glancing
-at each other. Neither could resist the attraction. Several times they
-caught each other at it.
-
-At about their third mutual detection, which happened during the tying
-of the bow, Norman laughed again.
-
-"We're certainly a pair," he said. "Whether aces or deuces remains to
-be seen, eh?
-
-"Gad, but I'm weak," he added, sinking on to the bed as Rockwell
-finished his job. "You may have to carry me downstairs."
-
-"We'll carry you all right," said Rockwell. "We're all ready, aren't
-we?"
-
-"I suppose so," said Norman.
-
-Rockwell stooped and picked him up in his arms, exerting himself only
-moderately, apparently, in so doing. The Senator was light on account
-of his carefully preserved slenderness, and Rockwell was really very
-strong.
-
-"Bring his hat, Merriam," said the latter.
-
-Rockwell carried him through the blue dining room into the sitting room,
-Merriam following with the silk hat. Both Jennie and Margery were
-standing.
-
-Norman waved his hand limply to Jennie over Rockwell's shoulder.
-
-"Bye-bye, pet," he said. "I'm all in, you see. Sorry to have bothered
-you like this when I wasn't fit."
-
-"Georgie boy!" cried Jennie.
-
-With a little run she came up behind Rockwell, caught Norman's hand, and
-kissed it.
-
-"You'll let me know how you are? You'll come back?"
-
-"Course I will," said Norman, though he had promised Aunt Mary that
-afternoon that he would "cut out" Jennie and the whole of that part of
-his life to which she belonged.
-
-It may be that Jennie suspected something of the sort. There were tears
-in her bright, soft eyes, and her cheeks were pale enough to make her
-slight rouging obvious.
-
-"You will, won't you?" she said. "Come soon, Georgie boy!"
-
-Norman only smiled at her and feebly waved again. Rockwell meanwhile
-was moving towards the hallway. Jennie followed closely, though Margery
-tried to prevent her.
-
-"Let them go, Jen!" whispered Margery.
-
-"Shut up, Marge!" said Jennie almost fiercely.
-
-And then the catastrophe which Margery had been trying to forestall, and
-which Rockwell had not sufficiently foreseen or else had not cared to
-prevent, occurred: Jennie came face to face with Simpson in the little
-hallway. She stopped short.
-
-"You!" she said.
-
-"Yes, Miss Jennie," said Simpson, looking at her steadily. "I didn't
-mean you should see me. I came to help take Mr. Norman away. It was me
-that discovered the plan to catch him here."
-
-Jennie knew from Rockwell's earlier explanation that this was true. She
-tried to give Simpson what she herself would probably have called the
-"once-over"--a scornful survey from head to foot. But her histrionic
-purpose failed her. Her eyes fell too quickly.
-
-"Well, be quick about it," she said. For the first time her voice was
-harsh.
-
-Rockwell meanwhile had carried Norman on into the outer hall--for
-Simpson had already opened the door--and set him down leaning against
-the banister.
-
-"Margery!" he called sharply.
-
-Margery, glad of any diversion, advanced quickly:
-
-"What do you want?"
-
-"A stepladder. Got one?"
-
-"Why--yes!"
-
-"Go with her, Simpson, and get it," Rockwell commanded.
-
-"Yes, Mr. Rockwell."
-
-"This way," said Margery, and she and Simpson passed by Jennie and
-Merriam, who stood a little behind Jennie, and disappeared into the
-flat.
-
-Jennie gave one quick look at Norman, who was leaning weakly against the
-railing staring in front of him, turned away with eyes that were very
-bright and a little hard, brushed past Merriam, and went back into the
-sitting room and sat down.
-
-Almost at the same moment Simpson returned, carrying a rather tall
-stepladder and followed by Margery.
-
-Norman came out of his apathy and stared. Simpson set the ladder up in
-the center of the hall, mounted it, and climbed through the trap, which
-they had left open when they descended.
-
-"Here. Catch!" said Rockwell. He tossed Norman's silk hat up through
-the trap, and Simpson caught it.
-
-Then he stooped, picked Norman up again, and began to mount the ladder
-with him.
-
-"What in hell!" said the sick man.
-
-Rockwell did not reply but continued to mount and then hoisted the
-Senator up so that Simpson could catch him under the arms and draw him
-through the trap.
-
-Finally he spoke to Merriam:
-
-"Take this ladder inside. Then you must go straight to bed. He'll be
-here any time now. I'll 'phone from the hotel when we get there."
-
-He swung himself up on to the roof. The trap closed.
-
-"Well, I'll be damned!" said Margery Milton.
-
-Merriam did not like profanity in women, even in Margeries.
-
-"Very likely you will," he said.
-
-Margery looked at him sharply:
-
-"You think you're smart, don't you? Are you going to bring that ladder
-in?"
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XIX*
-
- *A NEW ANTAGONIST*
-
-
-Merriam shut the stepladder together, lifted it into an oblique
-position, and carried it through the inner hallway into the sitting
-room, where he stopped, not knowing where to go with it.
-
-Jennie was still sitting. She looked up at him. The same expression of
-interest which had showed in her eyes once before returned to them. She
-smiled and shifted her position, crossing her knees. But she volunteered
-no information as to what he should do with the stepladder which he was
-awkwardly holding.
-
-Meanwhile Margery had followed him into the inner hall, closed the door,
-and put up the chain. She now came past him and pushed aside the
-portieres into the dining room.
-
-"Bring it this way, please," she said, quite politely.
-
-He carried the ladder through the blue dining room into a kitchenette,
-and thence through a door which Margery held open on to a narrow back
-porch, from which he had a glimpse of a sort of orderly labyrinth of
-steep wooden stairs and narrow back porches around the four sides of an
-inner court.
-
-He returned into the kitchenette, which was almost entirely filled up
-with a gas stove. Margery shut the door.
-
-"Go into the sitting room and talk to Jen," she said. "I want her to
-forget about Simpson. I'll change the bed for you."
-
-"Thank you," said Merriam, who began to perceive that Miss Milton, in
-spite of her profanity, had certain admirable qualities.
-
-He went through the dining room, hesitated for a moment before the
-portieres--he could not have said why--and then pushed them open.
-
-Jennie had risen and was standing beside a table between the windows.
-The table held a parchment-shaded lamp, a newspaper, a small camera, and
-a bowl of violets. Merriam had not noticed the flowers before. He
-remembered the violets worn by the floor clerk at the hotel, and
-wondered whether George Norman had saved himself trouble at the
-florist's by ordering two bunches from the same lot, to be sent to
-different addresses.
-
-Jennie was looking down at the flowers. She must have been aware of his
-presence. If so, she was apparently content that he should have the
-benefit of a good look at her trim figure and at her face in profile,
-which was its best view. She had a pretty nose; the artificially
-heightened colour of her cheeks was charming in this light; and the
-bright knob of her fair hair over her ear was a most alluring ornament.
-
-In a moment she bent gracefully down to smell the violets. As she
-straightened up she turned to look at him--a serious, appraising look
-that was somehow intimate. Then she smiled brightly.
-
-"Come in, Mr.----" (she seemed to forget his name and let it go) "and
-sit down."
-
-She tripped across the room to the davenport and sat, indicating that he
-was to sit beside her.
-
-Merriam wanted both to take that seat and not to take it. He took it.
-
-She crossed one leg over the other and looked at him, smiling. One
-small, squarish, plump hand lay on her knee, ready, Merriam half
-divined, to be taken if any one should desire to take it. He wondered
-if it were true that she had "never had any one but George."
-
-"I forget your name," she said confidentially.
-
-"Merriam." It was not said stiffly. He was too much attracted to be
-stiff. He realised that he was answering her smile.
-
-"What's your first name?"
-
-"John."
-
-"Then I shall call you 'John.' I don't like last names--and 'Mister'
-and 'Miss.'"
-
-"They're stiff," he said, "playing up" alarmingly as on a former
-occasion.
-
-She scrutinised his face, growing grave.
-
-"You're awfully like George," she said, "except here."
-
-She raised her hand, and with the tip of her forefinger touched his
-chin.
-
-"You're sterner," she added.
-
-It was the very point Merriam himself had noted. He admired her
-acuteness of observation. And of course he was flattered. But he
-realised that he was not being particularly stern at that moment.
-
-"I expect I am," he said, trying to look, if not to be, more so.
-
-Jennie moved an inch or two farther away from him, as if a little
-frightened by the iron qualities of this male.
-
-"Where's Margery?" she asked.
-
-"Here," said Margery's voice, with disconcerting patness.
-
-She came through the portieres and surveyed the two of them with an
-ironical look that was by no means lost on Merriam. He felt ashamed of
-himself.
-
-But Jennie gave him a quick glance with a little pout in it, as if to
-say, "What a nuisance! When we were just beginning to get acquainted!"
-
-And straightway his shame fled and he smiled at her.
-
-Margery, however, was speaking in her most businesslike tones:
-
-"I've changed your bed, and you'd better get into it as quick as you
-can. It's late now."
-
-"Yes," said Merriam, rising. "What time is it?"
-
-Before he could get out his own timepiece Jennie raised her arm and
-glanced at a small gold wrist watch.
-
-"Oh! Five minutes after ten!" she cried. She rose too. "You must
-hurry."
-
-"Yes," said Merriam.
-
-He moved to the portieres--hesitated. He did not know how to take leave
-under these novel circumstances.
-
-"Good night, ladies," he ventured in rather ceremonious tones.
-
-To his chagrin both girls burst out laughing.
-
-"Good night, gentleman!" Jennie called merrily after him, and their
-renewed giggling pursued him as, in painful confusion, he crossed to the
-door of the bedroom.
-
-He shut that door behind him and rapidly undressed, stimulated to speed
-in his operations by a vigorous mental kicking of himself as an ass and
-a "boob." A suit of pajamas, apparently quite new; was laid out on a
-chair. He got into these and slipped into bed.
-
-The moment he was recumbent he realised that he had forgotten to turn
-out his light. No matter. He had no idea of sleeping. Besides Thompson
-would be there any minute.
-
-Ah, Thompson! With relief his mind seized upon this topic. It was
-sufficiently absorbing. Any minute now Thompson would burst in,
-demanding Senator Norman. He, Merriam, would pretend he had never seen
-Thompson before, never even heard of him. "My name is not Norman," he
-would say. "My name is Merriam. Who are you? And what do you want?"
-Thompson would stare, falter, begin to apologise and explain. It was
-pleasingly dramatic. He pursued the interview. His own conduct therein
-displayed the quintessence of composure and _savoir faire_. Jennie and
-Margery--yes, both of them were present--would be impressed; they would
-laugh at him no longer. Thompson was sacrificed mercilessly.
-
-But the minutes passed and nothing happened. There was no sign of the
-real Thompson. What was wrong? The silence of the small, lighted
-bedroom began to get on Merriam's excited nerves. Had Thompson somehow,
-in spite of Rockwell's elaborate precautions, got wind of the real
-situation, discovered their trick before it was played? Had he remained
-at the hotel, seen the real Norman return, and perceived the whole
-imposition?
-
-A light knock sounded on his door. Merriam jumped and then lay still.
-
-"Can I come in?"
-
-It was Jennie's voice.
-
-"Yes," he said, embarrassed; but what other reply could be made?
-
-Jennie opened the door and came to his bedside. She had changed her
-attire completely. She now wore the costume of a _ballerina_--a tight
-pink corsage, very low and sleeveless, with the slightest of pink loops
-over her shoulders, a short, fluffy pink skirt barely to her knees, pink
-tights, and pink dancing slippers. Over one of the bright knobs of her
-hair was a pink rose. She was much more brilliantly rouged than before,
-and he was conscious of a warm scent of powder and perfume.
-
-Merriam lay staring at her without speaking, subconsciously shocked
-perhaps, but openly bewildered and fascinated.
-
-She smiled at him and seemed to be inspecting him in return. Her left
-hand hung at her side, holding something heavy, but she put out her
-right and touched his hair--with a single little movement ruffled it.
-
-"You look very nice lying there," she said in the most natural tones in
-the world. "How do I look?"
-
-She stepped back and pirouetted, turning completely around on her toes.
-The fluffy pink skirts swung out and circled with her in a most
-entrancing manner. Merriam was quite dazzled. The white gleam of her
-back as she turned, the slender white arms, held gracefully away from
-her sides, in spite of that heavy something in one hand, the tight
-slimness of the waist, the glimpse of pink legs beneath the circling
-skirt--he had seen the like only on the stage. It was rather
-overpowering so close at hand.
-
-But in a single rosy moment her revolution was completed. She was
-facing him again and relaxing down off her toes.
-
-"How do I look?" she repeated, smiling, with the slightest natural
-augmentation of her artificial flush.
-
-Merriam swallowed. "Stunning!" he ejaculated.
-
-She beamed. "Of course I do," she said.
-
-Then her face seemed to harden. She stepped closer to the bed so that
-she was almost bending over him.
-
-"I've got a part to play," she said. "Well, I'm going to play it."
-There was a touch of something like defiance in her voice now. "I've
-cooked up a plot for Mister Thompson. Marge don't like it, but she'll
-help. I'll show him! You've got to help too."
-
-She raised her left hand, displaying the heavy object held therein,
-which he had not yet identified. He was somewhat startled to see that it
-was a small revolver.
-
-"Take it," she said.
-
-As he did not instantly put out his arm she tossed it across so that it
-fell on the bed on the other side of him.
-
-"It's loaded," she said, "with blanks. Mister Thompson shall see you
-first. But afterwards Marge and I will see what we can do with him.
-We'll get him to stay for a little supper, and I'm going to play up to
-him. I'll do a dance on the table. But when he tries to catch me I'll
-scream. That's where you come in. You rush out with your revolver and
-drive him out of the house. Won't it be fun?" she demanded, glowing with
-excitement. "We'll have the goods on him. He'll keep his face shut
-after that. Whatever he knows or thinks about George! We'll have a
-fine story for Mrs. Thompson, if he don't. Oh!"
-
-A doorbell had rung loudly in the kitchenette.
-
-"There he is now. Remember! When I scream!"
-
-She was gone from the bedroom, closing the door behind her.
-
-Merriam lay as if dazed. This "high life" was proving almost too fast
-for his bucolic and pedagogical wits. He jumped when the bell rang
-again more violently. Then he heard the sound of the hall door being
-opened and a loud masculine voice. Was it Thompson's? A moment or two
-later the voice became more distinct, and he could hear the girls'
-voices too. He could not be sure it was Thompson. Was it some one of
-his "henchmen" instead? Whoever he was, he was in the sitting room. In
-a moment or two he would almost certainly be coming out to the bedroom.
-
-Merriam suddenly remembered the revolver and reached for it and slipped
-it under the bedclothes. He had several minutes more to wait. The
-voices became lower. Then they were raised again. Suddenly he heard the
-rings of the portieres clash--the curtains had been sharply flung aside.
-Margery's thin voice came to him.
-
-"See for yourself, then!" it said.
-
-"That's better," said the masculine voice in tones half amused, half
-irritated. Was it Thompson?
-
-Light footsteps and heavy footsteps crossed the dining room together.
-The bedroom door was opened.
-
-"Sir," said Margery to Merriam, in tones a little shrill with
-excitement, "this is a Mr. Crockett. He has some crazy notion about your
-being Senator Norman. See for yourself, Mr.--Crockett!" She spoke his
-name as though it were an insult. "Remember, he's sick," she added
-warningly. Margery was not a bad actress.
-
-Crockett! Crockett himself! So much the better! With an effort
-Merriam steadied his nerves. Mr. Crockett advanced to the bedside--a
-tall, imposing gentleman in evening clothes with keen blue eyes and a
-thin remnant of lightish hair.
-
-"Well, George," he said blandly, "glad to see you. Your little friends
-are very loyal. But they couldn't keep me away from you."
-
-Merriam instantly disliked Mr. Crockett. He plunged with zest into his
-part.
-
-"George?" he inquired coldly. "My name's not George!"
-
-"Oh, come, come, Norman! You're caught. Fess up."
-
-But he looked closer. At the same moment Margery lifted a silk shade
-off the electric bulb by the bureau, and the cold hard light fell full
-on the younger man's face.
-
-"Who do you think I am?" said Merriam. "And who are you?" he added in
-an insolent tone.
-
-The impressive financier stared. He bent down and stared harder.
-
-"Well?" Merriam demanded with all the hauteur he could muster. And
-then: "Got an eye-ful?"
-
-He had preconceived this colloquy in much more dignified phrases, but
-the insulting tag of boyish slang popped out of him unawares. However,
-he could not have done better. Probably he could never, by taking
-thought, have done as well. Senator Norman would assuredly not have used
-that expression; it had been coined long since his day in Boyville.
-
-Mr. Crockett was convinced. But he was a gentleman of considerable
-imperturbability. He merely straightened up and asked:
-
-"Who are you?"
-
-The younger man suddenly decided not to give his name. There was that
-in Mr. Crockett's blue eyes that suggested an uncomfortable pertinacity
-and ruthlessness in following up any clue he might get hold of.
-
-"What business is that of yours?" said Merriam.
-
-Mr. Crockett blinked. He was doubtless unaccustomed to such replies.
-But he merely asked another question:
-
-"Where are you from?"
-
-"Down State," said Merriam. That was both insolent and safe: Illinois
-is tolerably sizable.
-
-"How old are you?"
-
-Merriam saw an advantage in answering this query truthfully.
-
-"Twenty-eight," he said. "What of it?"
-
-"You don't happen to be a young nephew or cousin of Senator Norman's, do
-you?" asked Mr. Crockett, hitting the bull's-eye with his first arrow.
-
-Merriam, somewhat startled, countered with a flat denial:
-
-"No, I'm not. I've been told I look like him," he added. "Somebody
-took me for him last night. But I'm only related to him through Adam and
-Eve--so far as I know."
-
-Mr. Crockett scanned him narrowly:
-
-"Somebody took you for Norman last night?"
-
-"They sure did." Having struck the slangy note by accident, Merriam was
-enough of an actor to keep it up.
-
-"I should be much obliged if you will tell me about that."
-
-Merriam's self-confidence returned. He had been realising how little
-this dialogue was developing in accordance with his pleasing
-anticipations. Instead of the role of a polished man of the world,
-delivering brilliant thrusts of irony and reducing his interlocutor to
-apologetic confusion, he had stumbled inadvertently on that of a slangy
-youth, submitting to be catechised by an individual who remained
-singularly composed and had proved dangerously shrewd. But at last he
-had led up adroitly enough to the story which Rockwell had charged him
-to tell. He set himself to tell it in character:
-
-"Well, if you want to know, I came up to the City on
-business--yesterday. When I got my work done I thought I'd have a
-little fun--see the sights, you know. I don't know this town much, but
-I got hold of a taxi man who took me around. I looked in at several
-places. I guess I had a pretty good time. I don't remember much. I
-had more highballs than I'm used to. We ended up at a dance hall
-somewhere. There were some pretty girls there. Somebody said, 'You're
-Senator Norman, aren't you?' That struck me as funny. 'Sure, I am,' I
-said, and I kept it up. Soon everybody in the place was calling me
-'Senator.' I treated the gang. Then I got into a fight. I don't
-remember how. Somebody knocked me down, I think. But I wasn't hurt
-any. After that I picked up this little girl that lives here--the one
-in pink,--and she brought me home with her. I had a bad head on this
-morning and a bad cold besides. The little girl is a good sport. She
-let me stay here all day. I'm going down home in the morning."
-
-"I see," said Mr. Crockett slowly.
-
-Merriam had need of all his self-command to conceal his elation as he
-perceived that his formidable antagonist had swallowed bait, hook, and
-sinker, as the idiom goes. He was obviously piecing Merriam's narrative
-together in his mind with the _Tidbits_ story about Norman. Margery,
-who had remained standing unobtrusive and silent by the bureau, flashed
-Merriam a commendatory glance.
-
-Stimulated thereby, he pertly followed up his advantage:
-
-"Care for any more of my personal memoirs?"
-
-"No, thank you," said Mr. Crockett with a rather sour smile. "Good
-night, Mr.--Mr.----"
-
-He was angling for the name again, but with a feebleness unworthy of a
-great financier.
-
-"Mr. Blank," said Merriam. "I've a bit of a reputation to keep up in my
-own home town."
-
-"I see," said Mr. Crockett again. "Well, I'm sorry to have intruded.
-Take care of your reputation!"
-
-He turned away towards the door.
-
-In that open door Jennie had stood listening. Now her cue had come. She
-took it promptly. She advanced into the bedroom, stepping lightly on her
-toes, her pink skirt waving prettily. She smiled her brightest smile at
-Mr. Crockett.
-
-"He isn't Senator Norman, is he?" she cried gaily.
-
-"He certainly isn't," said Mr. Crockett, looking at her. No man could
-have helped looking at her.
-
-"You were awfully rude about it," said Jennie, pouting. She had stopped
-about two feet in front of him.
-
-"Was I?"
-
-"I should say you were. Awfully! You ought to do something to make up
-for it."
-
-"What ought I to do?" asked Mr. Crockett.
-
-"You might stay for a little supper with Margery and me."
-
-"Might I?"
-
-Unexpectedly Mr. Crockett looked away from Jennie. He looked at
-Merriam, thoughtfully--a disconcerting thoughtfulness. Then he turned
-back to Jennie.
-
-"Perhaps I might," he said, with a faint smile.
-
-Merriam read his mind. He was sure he did. The man might or might not
-be slightly attracted by Jennie's prettiness, but what he was thinking
-was that he would be able to get more out of her than he had been able
-to get from Merriam. The latter at once perceived that Jennie's
-melodramatic scheme was dangerous and silly. It might have been all
-right with Thompson, but not with this man. She hadn't sense enough to
-see the difference. But he could do nothing to stop her.
-
-Already she had cried, "Oh, goody!" like a little girl.
-
-She stepped past Mr. Crockett, brushing him with her skirts, put her
-hands on his shoulders and began playfully to push him towards the
-dining room.
-
-"It's all ready," she was saying. "We got it for the man inside, but he
-says he isn't hungry. We have sandwiches and olives and cheese and
-beer--and there's whiskey, if you like."
-
-"I'll take beer," said Mr. Crockett, mustering a certain lightness and
-allowing himself to be pushed.
-
-Merriam looked at Margery, still standing by the bureau. She too had
-changed her costume. She now wore an evening dress of black and gold,
-in which she looked very well, rather brilliant, in fact. But what
-Merriam noticed was the understanding look in her eyes. She had read
-Mr. Crockett's purpose as clearly as he had.
-
-"We'll be careful," she said. "You did fine. Shall I turn out the
-light?"
-
-"No," said Merriam. "Leave it, please."
-
-She walked out of the room and closed the door.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XX*
-
- *AN EVENTFUL SUPPER PARTY*
-
-
-Though Margery had closed the door Merriam could hear practically
-everything that went on in the adjoining room--as one commonly can in an
-apartment.
-
-"Get the food from the ice chest, will you, Marge?" cried Jennie, in
-tones whose gaiety sounded genuine. "I'll set out the drinks. Let's
-have a cocktail to start with, Mr.----"
-
-She interrupted herself:
-
-"What's your first name?"
-
-"Well," said Crockett, "one of my first names is Henry."
-
-"Then I'll call you 'Harry.' I hate last names--and 'Mister' and
-'Miss'!"
-
-Merriam in his recumbent solitude made a cynically humorous grimace.
-She had used those very words with him--had begun the same way. Her
-regular formula doubtless.
-
-"I'm 'Jennie,' you know," she continued. "Now, what kind of cocktail?"
-
-"I'll stick to beer, please."
-
-"But I want to start with a cocktail! Have one with me! Please!"
-
-The tone was that of a teasing child. In his mind's eye Merriam could
-see vividly the trim pink figure (as it had pirouetted before him) and
-the pretty pouting face. But Crockett was apparently unmoved.
-
-"Bye and bye," he said suavely. "Go ahead with your cocktail. We don't
-all have to drink the same things, do we? I'll start with beer and work
-up to cocktails."
-
-"Well, then," said Jennie, with a swift return to unpetulant gaiety,
-"Marge is bringing your old beer. Oh, goody! See! Cheese sandwiches
-and chicken sandwiches and lettuce-and-mayonnaise sandwiches!"
-
-Evidently Margery had returned well laden from the ice chest.
-
-"Which kind will you have, Harry?"
-
-"Cheese, thank you," said "Harry."
-
-"There! With my own fingers!"
-
-Jennie spoke with some confidence that the touch of her fingers would
-render bread and cheese ambrosial.
-
-"Thank you," said "Harry" again, with the barest nuance of dryness in
-his tone. "I'll open the beer. What will you drink, Miss Milton?"
-
-Undoubtedly he was snubbing Jennie! Those blue eyes of his might
-perhaps be attentive enough to white arms and tight waists and pink legs
-when he himself had sought them out, but they were not to be distracted
-by any such frivolous phenomena when serious business was afoot. Jennie
-would fail! Merriam was sure of it.
-
-But at any rate she was not easily snubbed.
-
-"Her name's Margery," she cried, consistent in her antipathy to
-surnames.
-
-"Well, Margery?" said Crockett, complaisantly.
-
-"Beer," said Margery.
-
-It was the first word Merriam had heard her speak. Her taciturnity
-comforted him. Jennie was a little fool, but Margery would keep her
-head. They would waste their time and their sandwiches and beer on
-Crockett, but perhaps she would foil any inquiries he might presently
-attempt.
-
-"Don't set things in the middle of the table, Marge," cried. Jennie.
-"Set 'em around the edge. I'm going to do a dance for you, Harry.
-Wouldn't you like to see me dancing on the table?"
-
-"It would be very charming," said "Harry." But the tone was merely
-gallant; it betokened no quickening of pulse.
-
-"I must have a sandwich first, though," said Jennie quickly. Even she
-perceived that she was not making progress.
-
-There followed eating and drinking, accompanied by a patter of gay,
-disconnected sallies from Jennie, relating chiefly to the eatables and
-drinkables. "Harry," continually appealed to by that name, remained
-calmly polite. Margery, when addressed, responded in monosyllables.
-Ripe olives and cold tongue and mustard were produced. Jennie had her
-cocktail, and then another. She needed stimulant, poor girl, to keep up
-the gay vivacity which was meeting with so little encouragement. A
-second bottle of beer was opened for "Harry" and Margery.
-
-Meanwhile Merriam, still listening, was engaged also in active
-cogitation. He saw well enough into Crockett's thought. The latter had
-been momentarily convinced by his, Merriam's, well-told tale. (Margery
-had said he had "done fine.") But the keen, realistic mind behind those
-blue eyes had almost immediately rebounded and seized upon the
-overwhelming inherent improbability of that yarn. That there should be a
-man without close relationship to Norman who resembled him so strongly
-was in itself decidedly remarkable. That this man should encounter
-Norman's mistress, by pure chance, at a public dance and go home with
-her was even more curious. And that all this should happen, merely
-fortuitously, on the very night on which Senator Norman had
-unaccountably broken, before nine o'clock, solemn promises given with
-every appearance of sincerity and willingness shortly before eight, and
-suddenly gone over to a party for which throughout a score of years he
-had expressed nothing but dislike and contempt--the mathematical chances
-against such a series of coincidences were simply incalculable.
-
-It was a quick, clear perception of this abstract, apriori incredibility
-that Merriam had read in Crockett's final glance before Jennie playfully
-pushed him out of the bedroom. Doubtless he was still revolving it in
-his mind as he sat at Jennie's table, responding with merely mechanical
-politeness to her rather pitiful attempts to pique his interest and
-desire. Well, let him revolve it. The story all hung together. What
-could he make of it? Little enough, probably, with the data he had now.
-But that was why he was lingering here at Jennie's--in the hope of
-getting more data. After another cocktail or two Jennie would not know
-what she was saying. Then he would begin to hint, to ask questions.
-Could Margery keep her quiet? A single word might give him a clue.
-
-Merriam became conscious of a wish that Rockwell were at hand to help.
-But that wish instantly gave birth to further fears. Rockwell had said
-he would telephone from the hotel as soon as they arrived. That message
-might come any minute now--with Crockett there! Whereabouts in the flat
-was the telephone? He had not noticed it anywhere. He looked about the
-bedroom. But it was not there, of course.
-
-Ought not that message to have come already? Surely they should be at
-the hotel by now unless something had gone wrong. He suddenly envisaged
-all the perils of discovery, which he had hitherto been too much
-occupied to realise, involved in the transportation of the sick Senator
-across the roof--down through the other trapdoor into the other
-hall--down three flights of stairs--along two blocks of city street to
-the taxi. They might so easily have been noted by some of Thompson's,
-or Crockett's, watchers, and followed to the hotel. Then they would be
-caught indeed--in the very fact. Verily, the paths of the impostor are
-perilous!
-
-Then Merriam's mind was brought sharply back from these alarming
-excursions to his own scarcely less dangerous situation. Crockett had
-for the first time volunteered a remark. It was just such a remark as
-Merriam had anticipated.
-
-"Nice boy you have in there."
-
-His voice was slightly lowered but only slightly. Perhaps he did not
-realise the perfection of the acoustic properties of flats.
-
-"Very nice boy!" agreed Jennie cordially.
-
-Merriam noticed with alarm just the faintest touch of the effect of
-cocktails in her accent. How many had the girl had by now?
-
-"So you met him at Reiberg's, did you?" Crockett pursued.
-
-"Reiberg's?" said Jennie doubtfully, "Reiberg's?"
-
-"Yes," Margery cut in. "Picked him up there and brought him home. I
-call it a shame. Jen's never done that sort of thing before."
-
-"I expect you took to him because he looks so much like Senator Norman,"
-suggested Crockett, rather skillfully persistent.
-
-"Yes," said Jennie, "looks very like George. But he's _not_ George.
-He's John!"
-
-"John what?" asked Crockett mildly.
-
-"John Blank!" said Margery sharply. "He told you he didn't want to give
-his name. Jen, keep your face shut!"
-
-"I beg your pardon, I'm sure," said Crockett.
-
-"Have a cocktail now!" said Jennie, quite unabashed.
-
-Crockett at last agreed to a cocktail, and it was fixed for him, and the
-conversation, if such it could be called, again concerned itself with
-incidents to the consumption of food and drink.
-
-Thank God for Margery! She had won the first trick. But Crockett would
-try again. And Jennie would grow more and more difficult to handle.
-Aside from the danger, Merriam hated to think of Jennie's getting really
-drunk. Could not Margery get rid of the man? The trouble was he had
-stayed at Jennie's invitation. Could not he, Merriam, do something?
-
-He felt under the bedclothes until he found the revolver. He drew it
-out and looked at it. But of what use was it, really? Would Crockett
-blench at the mere pointing of a pistol? He doubted it. It was loaded
-only with blanks, Jennie had said. And he dared not fire it anyway. The
-occupants of a dozen adjoining flats would hear the report. People would
-come bursting in. The police would be called. Well, was not that the
-solution? To have Crockett caught in that flat by the police in
-connection with a shooting? Perhaps, but not a nice one for himself.
-Not to be tried except as the very last resort. Besides, would it serve
-their purpose? A public exposure of Crockett would do no good. What
-they needed was a threat of possible exposure to hold over him--not the
-exposure itself.
-
-If only Jennie could succeed in her purpose of enticing him into some
-display of amorousness, of which he and Margery might be witnesses. It
-would be pleasant to "have the goods on him," to use Jennie's phrase.
-Why did she not dance for him? But Crockett would not be enticed. He
-might, however, pretend to be. He might decide to "play up" in that way
-if through Margery's watchfulness he could get nothing out of Jennie
-without doing so.
-
-But now there flashed into Merriam's mind a doubt of the efficacy of
-Jennie's scheme even if they should succeed in carrying it out. Suppose
-Crockett should catch hold of her after her dance and try to kiss her,
-and she should scream, and he should rush out with his revolver, and
-Crockett should be intimidated thereby into ignominious exit? That
-would be very good fun, but would it give them any hold over him in case
-of need? He could deny it. Against his word the only witnesses would be
-Jennie and Margery, whose testimony would not be taken very seriously,
-and himself--a nobody and an impostor. No wonder Margery, the
-clear-headed, had disapproved. They ought to get more tangible
-evidence--something in writing or a photograph.
-
-He suddenly remembered the camera on the table in the living room, and
-recalled also a certain college episode, a rather lurid incident of his
-fraternity days, in which a camera and a girl and a priggish freshman
-had figured. It suggested to him a decidedly picturesque and
-venturesome procedure against Crockett. But he shook his head. It was
-too violent, too rough. All very well for a parcel of boys with a
-freshman. But with Mr. Crockett, the mighty capitalist! No! Hardly!
-
-Just then he heard Jennie say:
-
-"Get your mandolin, Marge. I'm going to dance now."
-
-"Fine!" said Crockett. But he was still cool, amused.
-
-Margery made no reply, but she evidently complied. In a moment there
-came a preliminary strumming on the mandolin.
-
-"Help me up, Harry," said Jennie.
-
-"With pleasure," said "Harry."
-
-He was helping her to mount on to the table.
-
-"Move that siphon off," Jennie said. "I might kick it over."
-
-There was gay excitement in her voice. Cocktails had made her
-indifferent to appreciation. As for Merriam, the conscience of a
-realist compels me to report a sense of disappointment: he wanted to see
-the dance.
-
-"Now sit down again," cried Jennie. "You can see better."
-
-At this frankness Crockett laughed. There was the sound of his dropping
-into a chair.
-
-"Now, Marge!" Jennie commanded.
-
-But Margery did not strike into her tune and the dance did not begin,
-for at that instant the telephone rang.
-
-It was in the dining room, then!
-
-There was a quick movement of chairs and feet. Then Crockett's voice
-said, "Hello!"
-
-He was answering it!
-
-"That's not fair!" cried Margery. "It's not for you!"
-
-"Keep off!" said Crockett in a quick, stern whisper, and then, evidently
-into the telephone, "Yes! Yes!"
-
-Merriam leapt out of bed, revolver in hand, in his pajamas and flung
-open the door.
-
-Crockett was standing by the wall at the telephone. Jennie, in her
-ballet costume, stood transfixed in the center of the table. Margery
-was rushing at Crockett.
-
-"You--you spy!" she screamed.
-
-Merriam, in the door, pointed his revolver.
-
-"Drop it!" he cried, meaning the telephone receiver. "Hands up!"
-
-But Crockett, catching Margery by the shoulder with his free hand, held
-her powerfully at arm's length and only smiled at Merriam's revolver.
-
-"Why?" he asked into the telephone, and added quickly, "Nothing! These
-girls are romping so!"
-
-But his words could hardly be heard for Margery's screaming. He dropped
-the receiver and put the hand thus freed over the mouthpiece.
-
-"Shut up!" he said fiercely to Margery, and gave her shoulder a violent
-wrench.
-
-"O--oh!" she groaned.
-
-Something had to be done instantly, for Crockett was turning back to the
-telephone. With a sort of impulsive desperation Merriam threw the
-revolver at Crockett's head. The man dodged, and the revolver struck
-the opposite wall and fell to the floor. But the movement took him away
-from the telephone, and Merriam, rushing forward, added the impetus of a
-straight-arm thrust, which sent him staggering against the table.
-
-Then Merriam caught up the receiver.
-
-"Hello! Hello!" he cried into the mouthpiece.
-
-For an instant no reply. Then Central's voice said sweetly:
-
-"Your party's hung up." And added, in tones of unwonted interest:
-"What's the row there? Shall I send the police?"
-
-"No, no!" said Merriam. "There's nothing wrong here."
-
-He hung up and turned to face the room.
-
-Crockett was still leaning against the table. Margery was clutching the
-arm which a moment before had gripped her, and Jennie had jumped down
-from the table and caught hold of his other arm. But the financier
-appeared very little ruffled. He even smiled at Merriam, not
-unpleasantly.
-
-"Well, Mr. Merriam," he said, "suppose we sit down and talk it over--if
-these ladies will release me, that is."
-
-"Mr. Merriam!" Then the message _had_ been from Rockwell, and Crockett
-had got the name after all. How much more had he learned? Merriam was
-quite willing to talk in the hope of finding that out.
-
-"Very well," he said. "Let him go, Margery,--Jennie."
-
-"I'll dance for both of you!" cried Jennie, whose cheeks were decidedly
-flushed.
-
-"No!" said Merriam. "Sit down, please."
-
-"Sit down, Jen!" seconded Margery, viciously.
-
-"Oh, well!" Jennie plopped petulantly into a chair.
-
-The others sat, Merriam and Crockett across from each other. The
-financier looked steadily at the younger man.
-
-"Miss Milton was right," he began quietly. "The message was not for me.
-It was for you, Mr. Merriam. I think I ought to give it to you."
-
-"If you please," said Merriam.
-
-"It was that you should 'come at once to the hotel.'"
-
-Merriam managed not to blink.
-
-"What hotel?" he asked.
-
-For an instant Crockett weighed his answer. Then:
-
-"The De Soto," he said.
-
-But Merriam had read the meaning of the momentary pause: Rockwell had
-not named the hotel--he wouldn't, of course--Crockett was guessing.
-
-"De Soto?" he asked, looking as puzzled as he could. "I thought it
-might be from the Nestor House." (He was using the first name that
-popped into his head.)
-
-"Oh," said Crockett lightly, "Mr. Rockwell would be much more likely to
-telephone from the De Soto."
-
-Merriam was startled, but he could only go on as he had begun.
-
-"Rockwell?" he echoed, as if still further mystified.
-
-"Come, come," said Crockett, "I recognised his voice. I know it
-perfectly."
-
-"No friend of mine," Merriam persisted. There might be no advantage in
-continued denial, but certainly there could be none in admission.
-
-"Really, Mr. Merriam, hadn't you better tell me the whole story? You'll
-not find me ungenerous. I'll let you down easy."
-
-"The whole story?" said Merriam. "Thought I told you my whole story in
-the bedroom a while back. What more do you want?"
-
-Crockett shrugged his shoulders. He smiled blandly:
-
-"What I want is another cocktail, I guess. You'll join me, Mr. Merriam?
-You've had nothing all evening. It must have been dull for you, lying
-in there, while these pretty ladies have been entertaining me so
-charmingly. I understood you were sick, you know," he added slyly, "or
-I should have insisted on your coming out long ago." Then, quickly, so
-as to give Merriam no chance to reply: "Jennie, my dear, let's have your
-pretty dance now. We were interrupted."
-
-"No," said Jennie, rather sleepily, "I'm tired."
-
-"Have a cocktail," said Crockett promptly. "Then you'll be all right
-again."
-
-Jennie looked up with interest. "Well," she said.
-
-Crockett rose to mix the drinks.
-
-"You'll have one, too, Mr. Merriam?"
-
-But during the brief interchange between Crockett and Jennie, Merriam
-had been doing some quick thinking--wild thinking, perhaps. The plan
-suggested by his college memory, which before he had rejected as too
-violent, his mind now seized upon and was eagerly shaping to the present
-situation.
-
-When Crockett addressed him, he rose.
-
-"No," he said. "I'm tired too. I _am_ sick." He simulated a slight
-dizziness. "I'll go lie down again. If you'll excuse me."
-
-He moved to the bedroom door, affecting uncertainty in his steps. As he
-passed into the bedroom he called: "Margery!"
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XXI*
-
- *FLASH LIGHTS*
-
-
-In a moment Margery had followed him.
-
-"Shut the door." He barely formed the words with his lips.
-
-She obeyed.
-
-"That camera--in the sitting room," he whispered. "Can you take a flash
-light with it?"
-
-"Sure," came the whispered answer. "That's what we use it for."
-
-"Have you any rope?"
-
-"Rope?" echoed Margery's whisper. "There's a clothesline on the back
-porch."
-
-"Bring it to me!"
-
-Margery looked at him. But a high degree of mutual confidence had been
-established between these two. She nodded.
-
-"Right away?"
-
-"Yes. _He_ mustn't see it."
-
-"No."
-
-She opened the door and closed it behind her. Merriam sat on the edge of
-the bed, thinking hard.
-
-"He wants a drink of water," he heard her say to the others in the
-dining room.
-
-With one ear, so to speak--that is to say, with so much of his mind as
-could attend to one ear,--he listened to Crockett and Jennie, engaged
-still in the business of mixing drinks. With the rest of his mind he
-was making plans, with a rapidity and confident daring that astonished
-himself.
-
-In a moment Margery had returned. In her right hand she carried a glass
-of water. Her left hand, hanging at her side, seemed to hold carelessly
-only a newspaper, folded in two. But as soon as she had closed the door
-she produced from between the folds a fairly stout clothesline, loosely
-coiled.
-
-Merriam tried its toughness and surveyed its length.
-
-"All right," he whispered. "Now go back. Drink with them. Jennie must
-dance. And have Crockett sit where he was before."
-
-This was at the end of the table nearest the telephone and nearest also
-to Merriam's door.
-
-Again Margery looked at him. She glanced at the rope. But she asked no
-questions. Without a word she went out and closed the door behind her.
-Admirable girl!
-
-Merriam's next actions were rather remarkable. He felt hastily in the
-pockets of his trousers, which lay over a chair, and produced a
-penknife. With this instrument he cut off four pieces of rope, each
-about four feet long. This left about ten feet in the main piece. With
-this main piece he proceeded to manufacture a slip noose, carefully
-testing both the strength of the slipknot and the readiness of its
-slipping. Then he gathered the noose and the four other pieces of rope
-into his left hand and rose and stood before the door, drawing a deep
-breath and listening.
-
-He had, of course, kept track more or less of the happenings in the
-other room. Margery, on returning, had demanded another glass of beer
-and had yielded to insistence that she have a cocktail instead. Then
-she had suggested that Jennie dance. Jennie had already been assisted
-on to the table again, and Margery was picking tentatively at her
-mandolin.
-
-"R-ready!" cried Jennie, a little unsteadily.
-
-Merriam stepped back and turned the button of his electric bulb, so as
-to have no light behind him.
-
-Then, as Margery struck into a bright quick tune, he softly opened the
-door with his right hand, holding his left hand with the ropes behind
-him, and stood looking at Jennie, whose pink toes had begun to patter
-merrily on the polished table.
-
-Jennie saw him and laughed to him, her eyes and her cheeks bright.
-
-"Come in, Johnny," she cried, and for a second one pink leg pointed
-straight at him as she turned.
-
-"Couldn't resist, eh?" chuckled Crockett, who was leaning back in the
-heavy chair Merriam had wished him to occupy. He was apparently really
-pleased for the first time. "Don't blame you," he added. "Come on in."
-
-His eyes, quite unsuspicious, returned to the circling skirts and the
-flushed face bobbing above them.
-
-This was Merriam's moment.
-
-He stepped quickly behind Crockett's chair, dropped the short pieces of
-rope on the floor, raised the noose with both hands, slipped it over the
-man's head, and pulled it suddenly tight about his neck.
-
-Crockett emitted a strangled oath and started to rise, but Merriam with
-one hand on his shoulder thrust him down again, and with the other
-tightened the noose about his throat.
-
-"Sit still," he threatened, "or I'll choke you!"
-
-Margery's tune had stopped abruptly, and Jennie stood still on the
-table, staring down in frightened bewilderment.
-
-"Margery!" Merriam commanded, "take one of these pieces of rope and tie
-his arm to the arm of the chair."
-
-The arm referred to was immediately raised away from the chair, but the
-noose tightened with a further jerk, and the arm fell limply back. In
-fact Crockett was gasping and choking so desperately that Merriam was
-compelled to loosen the rope a little.
-
-"Take it quietly," he cautioned, with perhaps a trifle more of youthful
-ferocity and exultation than the romantic hero should exhibit, "or I'll
-hang you sitting down!"
-
-Margery, obedient as usual, had stepped quickly forward, picked up a
-piece of rope, and begun to bind the arm nearest her to the chair.
-
-Crockett, somewhat eased, though still gasping a little, turned his head
-to look at Merriam. His first involuntary startled alarm was passing.
-The blue eyes looked steadily at the young man. A trace of their
-earlier cool amusement returned. He looked away again and sat perfectly
-still, acquiescent.
-
-Merriam, however, remained warily at his post in charge of the slip
-noose while Margery tied both arms.
-
-"Now tie his feet to the legs of the chair," said Merriam. "Jennie, you
-can help. Jump down and tie his right foot while Margery ties the
-left."
-
-But Jennie, still on the table, shook her pretty head.
-
-"I'd rather dance," she said, and regardless of the lack of music she
-folded her arms and began to do the steps of the Highland Fling.
-
-"Let her alone," said Margery, who had gone down on her knees and was at
-work on the left foot.
-
-Jennie tossed her head and quickened the tempo of her dance, keeping her
-eyes on Crockett, who, though still swallowing with difficulty, affected
-to regard her with interest.
-
-Margery crossed to Crockett's other side and knelt again. In a moment
-she completed her labours and rose, her cheeks a little reddened by her
-posture and vigorous work.
-
-"There!" she said, looking straight at Merriam, as if she were a soldier
-reporting to his officer.
-
-"Thank you very much," said the young man.
-
-He loosened the noose, leaving it still in place, however, about
-Crockett's neck. Then he stepped to the side of the table and held out
-his arms to Jennie.
-
-"Come!" he said, "I'll lift you down."
-
-She stood still. "You don't like my dancing," she pouted. "_He_ likes
-it!" She pointed at Crockett, who, twisting his eased neck about,
-smiled.
-
-"I'll like lifting you down," said Merriam.
-
-Jennie smiled and approached the edge of the table. For a moment he
-held a rosy, fragrant burden in his arms, and in that moment Jennie
-raised her face to his as if to be kissed. She was really rather
-incorrigible.
-
-On a different occasion the young man might have been irresistibly
-tempted (he had not thought of Mollie June for a long time), but just
-now he was no more in a mood to be enticed than Crockett had been an
-hour before.
-
-He set her lightly and quickly on her feet.
-
-"There!" he said.
-
-She made a face at him and dropped petulantly into a chair.
-
-Merriam turned to face his well-trussed victim.
-
-The said victim was now sufficiently at ease to open the conversation.
-
-"Well, Mr. Merriam," he said, "you've managed it rather cleverly. Very
-neat, in fact. You have me a prisoner all right. But what's the big
-idea? It seems to me you've only given yourself away. Before I only knew
-your name and that you were in connection with Rockwell and that your
-presence was desired at some hotel--the Nestor House, we'll say, to
-avoid argument, Now it's very clear that you are deeply implicated in
-the extraordinary events that have been happening. Otherwise you would
-have had no sufficient motive for this rather violent, not to say
-melodramatic, line of conduct." He glanced, with a smile, at his
-pinioned arms.
-
-This point of view, however, had already occurred to Merriam; and the
-answer was that Crockett, knowing already of a direct, confidential
-connection between Senator Norman's double and Senator Norman's new
-manager, would in a few hours at most be able to work out the whole
-truth of the situation.
-
-So he only answered his victim's smile with another smile equally
-good-humoured.
-
-"I don't think I've given away anything much," he said. "And I felt it
-was time to take out a bit of insurance."
-
-"Insurance?" repeated Crockett.
-
-"Yes. Insurance that you will treat me with that generosity which you
-half promised a while ago."
-
-"I promised nothing!" said Crockett, the smile fading out of his eyes.
-"I refuse to give any promise whatever."
-
-"That's all right," said Merriam, still good-humouredly. "In fact, I
-shouldn't count much on promises anyway.
-
-"You're married, I believe?" he continued to Crockett.
-
-Crockett did not reply.
-
-"And a church member, I presume? And a member of a number of highly
-respectable clubs?"
-
-He paused and waited, smiling.
-
-The smile was too much for Crockett. After a moment of holding in, he
-said sharply:
-
-"Well?"
-
-"Well, a gentleman who is all those things ought to be careful how he
-accepts entertainment from unattached young ladies, like our pretty
-Jennie here--in their flats at midnight." And then to Margery, "Go and
-get your camera ready.
-
-"When I was in college," Merriam continued, "the fraternity I belonged
-to initiated a freshman who turned out to be goody-goody. He wouldn't
-play cards, wouldn't dance, wouldn't go to the theater, wouldn't smoke.
-Even refused coffee and tea. Above all he simply wouldn't look at a
-girl. All he would do was study and go to class--and to church and
-Sunday School. To make it worse he was a handsome cuss with loads of
-money and his own motor car. He got on the fellows' nerves. Then a show
-came to town with a girl in the chorus that two of the fellows knew. So
-a bunch of us went to the show, and afterwards the two fellows who knew
-the girl brought her back to the chapter house in a taxi, with an opera
-cloak over the black tights which she wore in the last act. We gave her
-a little supper, and then four of us went upstairs to get the good
-little boy. He hadn't gone to the show. He was studying his
-trigonometry. We didn't have to lasso him, of course, because there
-were four of us. When we brought him into the dining room, the girl
-stood up and dropped off her cloak. It was worth something to see his
-face. Then we tied him into a chair, just the same way you're tied now.
-We set a beer bottle and half-emptied glass handy, and the girl sat on
-his knees and cocked one black leg over the arm of the chair and put one
-hand under his chin and put her lips to his cheek. And then we took the
-flash."
-
-"Oh, goody!" cried Jennie, ecstatically pleased by this climax. But
-Crockett by this time was staring at the story-teller with really
-venomous eyes.
-
-Merriam avoided those eyes and addressed himself to Jennie, the
-appreciative.
-
-"That was all," he said. "We gave the girl a twenty-dollar bill and the
-roses and sent her back to the hotel in the taxi. We could only show
-the picture to a few chaps, of course. One of the fellows did finally
-tell the story to one girl whom a lot of us knew and showed her the
-picture. It worked fine. The good little boy's reputation was made,
-and he had to live up to it, to the extent at least of becoming human.
-He became one of the finest fellows we ever had. The year after he
-graduated," Merriam finished reflectively, "he married the one girl who
-had seen the picture, and the chapter gave it to her with their wedding
-present."
-
-During this sequel Margery had returned with the camera and with some
-flash-light powder, for which she had had to search, in a dust pan.
-
-"Damn you!" cried the great financier virulently, straining helplessly
-at the ropes which confined his arms and legs. "If you think it will do
-you any good to take an indecent picture of me----"
-
-"Cut that!" said Merriam sharply. "Do you want me to tighten that noose
-again?"
-
-Crockett subsided with a snort that might have made whole boards of
-directors tremble.
-
-"Indecent!" said Merriam, enjoying himself hugely, as if he were still
-in college. "Certainly not! Only pretty. Very pretty. Come, Jennie!
-How about the pose?"
-
-"I'll show you!" cried Jennie. Half dancing on her toes, with skirts
-fluttering, and eyes sparkling the more, it seemed, because of
-Crockett's bitterly hostile regard, she tripped around the table and
-stood by his side, facing the same way he faced. She plucked the rose
-from her hair and stuck it behind Crockett's ear. It drooped
-grotesquely over his thin hair. Then, laughing at the rose, she put one
-bare arm about his neck, her hand extending beyond his face on the other
-side.
-
-"Give me a cocktail glass in that hand!" she cried. "Never mind what's
-in it. Anything!"
-
-Merriam filled a glass from the siphon and put it into the hand referred
-to.
-
-Then Jennie raised a pink leg and put it on the table, stretching
-straight in front of herself and Crockett towards the center of the
-board, amid the plates and glasses and crumpled napkins. She put her
-other hand under Crockett's chin as if about to tickle him, dropped her
-face close to his, and looked at Merriam with eyes of laughing inquiry.
-
-"Fine!" said Merriam. "Are you ready, Margery?"
-
-Margery was already pointing the camera.
-
-"Not yet," she said.
-
-He addressed himself to the victim:
-
-"Mr. Crockett, you can, of course, wink or twist your face to spoil the
-picture. If you do, I'll simply have to choke you a little before we
-try again. So you'd better look pleasant!"
-
-"Ready!" said Margery.
-
-Merriam set the dust pan, with the little heap of powder in the center
-of it, on a plate on the sideboard beside Margery, lit a match, and,
-with a last glance at Jennie's extraordinary pose and laughing face,
-switched off the lights and touched the powder.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XXII*
-
- *VIRTUE TRIUMPHANT*
-
-
-Immediately after the flash Merriam switched on the lights, and his eyes
-sought Crockett. Apparently the man had faced the camera stolidly--a
-grotesque figure surmounted by the dangling flower and enveloped as it
-were in Jennie's acrobatic pose.
-
-"All right!" said Merriam, coughing in the smoke which filled the small
-room. "But we'll take one more. You never can be sure of a single
-film. Got some more powder, Margery?"
-
-"Yes," said Margery, who had set the camera down and stepped aside to
-open a window. She passed into the sitting room.
-
-Jennie gingerly removed her leg from the table and her arm from about
-Crockett's neck. In the latter process she spilled a little of the
-water from the cocktail glass--unintentionally, let us hope--on
-Crockett's head.
-
-"Damn!"
-
-Jennie, quite regardless, eased herself on her two legs again.
-
-"Gee!" she said. "I couldn't have held that pose much longer. In
-another second I'd have split at the waist!"
-
-Merriam laughed. "Look what you've done," he said.
-
-Jennie caught up a napkin and mopped the face and head.
-
-"Sorry!" she cried sympathetically. "I didn't mean to wet him! There!"
-and she dropped a light kiss on the cleansed cheek and smiled her
-rosiest smile at the trussed victim.
-
-Crockett answered Jennie's smile with a glare that might have caused a
-panic on the Stock Exchange.
-
-It had no very serious effect, however, on Jennie. She shrugged her
-pretty shoulders and daintily chucked him under the chin.
-
-"That isn't a nice look!" she said.
-
-At this point Margery returned with a package of flash-light powder and
-began to pour a second little pile on the dust pan.
-
-"Take your pose!" said Merriam to Jennie.
-
-"Not that one," said Jennie. "It's too hard. Look!"
-
-She picked the rose from above Crockett's ear and stepped behind his
-chair. Then she stooped till her chin rested on the top of his head and
-let her two bare arms drop past his cheeks till her hands came together
-on his shirt front. In her hands she held the rose pointing upward so
-that the blossom was just below his chin.
-
-The effect was distinctly comical--Crockett's dour countenance, with its
-angry eyes, framed above by Jennie's pretty laughing face, resting on
-the very top of his head, at the sides by her round white arms, and
-below by the rose under his chin.
-
-"Fine!" Merriam laughed. "It's better than the other. Ready, Margery?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-A second time he switched off the lights and touched a match to the
-powder.
-
-Again Crockett had not even blinked so far as Merriam could judge. Well
-satisfied, the latter spoke to Margery:
-
-"Put that camera away, will you, please, where it could not be easily
-found except by yourself."
-
-Margery picked up the camera and departed into the kitchenette.
-
-Then, "Let him alone, Jennie," he said. For Jennie had left the back of
-Crockett's chair and perched herself on the edge of the table beside him
-and was flicking him under the chin with the rose.
-
-"All right," she said. "He's no fun. He's very cross!"
-
-She slid off the table and dropped into a chair, transferring her
-attention to Merriam, as though in the hope that he might be less
-obdurately disposed.
-
-But Merriam addressed himself to the other man.
-
-"Now, Mr. Crockett," he said, "this little supper party and
-entertainment are over, I believe. If you wish to leave, I shall be
-glad to release you and permit you to do so."
-
-Crockett's reply was a sound between a grunt and a growl.
-
-Merriam walked around the table and picked up the revolver where it had
-fallen by the wall.
-
-"I don't believe," he continued, "that it will do you any good to start
-any rough-house when I have freed you. If you do, Jennie and Margery
-will scream, and I shall fire this revolver. That will bring in
-neighbours and probably the police, whose testimony would thus be added
-to that of the pictures we have taken as to your manner of spending your
-evening. You will understand that while I shall have those pictures
-developed the first thing in the morning I shall not show them to any
-one except Mr. Rockwell unless you compel me to do so."
-
-By this time Crockett had become articulate.
-
-"Compel you to do so?" he repeated stiffly. "May I ask what you mean by
-that?"
-
-"Well," said Merriam, "you see I am an enthusiastic supporter of the
-Reform League as led by Mr. Rockwell and Senator Norman and Mayor Black.
-You, I understand, are opposed to the League and its policies. So long
-as your opposition relates itself only to those policies and involves
-only open public discussion of their merits, I shall, of course, have no
-reason to interfere. But if your opposition should take the form of any
-personal attack, on Senator Norman, let us say, I should feel compelled
-to retaliate by a personal attack upon you, making use of these pictures
-we have taken to-night and the story that will readily weave itself
-about them. Do you see?"
-
-"See!" Crockett cried. "Of course I see. Blackmail! How much do you
-want for that camera? Name your price."
-
-"It has no cash price," returned Merriam steadily. "Now if I release
-you, will you leave quietly?"
-
-For a long moment the financier stared at the younger man who had
-worsted him. Then:
-
-"At this moment," he said acridly, "I certainly have no other desire
-than to get away from this place and to be rid of my present
-companionship."
-
-Merriam was tempted to laugh at the stilted dignity of this phraseology,
-but he managed to keep a straight face.
-
-"Very well," he said. "Margery,"--for Margery had just returned from
-the kitchenette minus the camera,--"help me untie him, will you? Feet
-first."
-
-Margery and Merriam knelt for a moment at the two sides of Crockett's
-chair and released his two legs. Then Merriam again put the table
-between himself and Crockett and stood waiting, revolver in hand,
-leaving to Margery the work of unbinding the arms. He was afraid that
-his own near presence to Crockett when the latter found himself free
-might tempt him irresistibly to personal assault.
-
-In the moment during which he stood waiting he became conscious that
-Jennie, half reclining in the chair into which she had dropped, was
-smiling at him--a pretty, confidential smile which he did not
-understand.
-
-But he had no time to consider Jennie just then, for Margery had
-completed her work. The last piece of rope fell on the floor, and she
-lifted the slip noose from about Crockett's neck. He had been rather
-tightly bound and did not instantly have the full use of his limbs.
-Margery took his arm to assist him.
-
-"My coat and hat!" he said, not looking at Merriam.
-
-"In the sitting room," said Margery.
-
-He turned himself in that direction and in a jerky walk, with some
-support from Margery, moved towards and through the portieres. He had
-disdained to cast so much as a glance at either Merriam or Jennie.
-
-Jennie resented this. "Old crosspatch!" she cried.
-
-Merriam stepped hastily to the portieres and peeped through. Crockett
-had caught up his light overcoat and silk hat from a chair. He refused
-Margery's offer to help him on with his coat and made, already moving
-more naturally, for the hall door. Margery followed him. The door
-opened--closed again. Margery returned from the hallway.
-
-Merriam advanced through the portieres into the sitting room.
-
-"Well!" he exclaimed.
-
-"Well!" returned Margery, with a dry laugh--the first laugh Merriam had
-heard from her during the whole evening.
-
-"See what he does in the street," she added. "Raise the shade about a
-foot. I'll turn off the light."
-
-Merriam acted promptly on this excellent hint. In a moment the room was
-in darkness, and he was kneeling by the window watching the street
-below, which was fairly well illuminated from arc lights at either
-corner. Part way down the block on the other side of the roadway a car,
-presumably a taxi, stood by the curb, with a man walking up and down
-beside it. Jennie's flat was too high up for Merriam to be able to see
-the sidewalk immediately below. If, therefore, Crockett on emerging
-from the building merely walked away, he would see nothing. But this
-was hardly likely.
-
-Presently, sure enough, the taxi showed sudden signs of life. The man
-hastily got in, and the car rolled forward, crossing the street
-diagonally, and stopped directly below Merriam's window. Crockett had
-come out and signalled it. A moment later it shot away down the block
-and turned the corner.
-
-Merriam still knelt by the window, peering into the street. He was
-looking for signs of any remaining watchers, for he had his own exit to
-think of: Rockwell had wanted him to "come at once to the hotel."
-
-As he knelt there in the dark he suddenly sensed a warm fragrant body
-close beside his own. A pair of soft bare arms slipped about his neck.
-
-"It was fine!" Jennie's voice whispered in his ear. "You're a nice
-boy!"
-
-She had crept up behind him in the dark. Margery must have left the
-room.
-
-For a moment Merriam knelt in fascinated silent rigidity. When he moved
-it was only to turn his head. And the turning of his head brought his
-face close to Jennie's, which, with the dim light from the street upon
-it, smiled at him with a kind of saucy tenderness. It was the face of a
-pretty child, with the lure of womanhood added, but with nothing else of
-maturity in it.
-
-Her lips puckered. "Kiss me!" she whispered.
-
-As he still only stared she quickly leaned forward a couple of inches
-more--her lips rested on his.
-
-I am very much afraid that for an instant Merriam's lips responded. He
-half turned on one knee. His arms involuntarily closed about the
-seductive little body. He felt the short silk skirts crush deliciously
-against his legs.
-
-And then a grotesque sort of composite picture of all the things he
-ought to remember, including Rockwell, Norman, Mollie June, and the
-members of the Riceville School Board, rushed across his mind. He
-struggled to his feet, pushing Jennie not roughly--away.
-
-"Margery!" he called.
-
-"Yes?" came Margery's voice from the dining room.
-
-"Turn on the lights!"
-
-By the time Margery had stepped through the portieres and pushed the
-switch Jennie had thrown herself face downward on the davenport, crying.
-
-"Nobody loves me!" she sobbed.
-
-Margery, standing by the switch, looked from Merriam at the window to
-Jennie on the couch and back again. Her expression indicated no
-bewilderment--rather a humorously cynical comprehension. She knew her
-Jennie.
-
-At any rate, that glance steadied the young man. After meeting it for a
-moment he turned to Jennie. Poor little girl! He felt that he
-understood her perfectly. There was a side of himself that was like
-that. Only he had other sides powerfully developed, and Jennie had no
-other sides. All his young chivalry rose up, in alliance with the
-missionary spirit of the teacher. He desired greatly to help her.
-
-After an instant's hesitation he crossed the room and drew up a chair
-beside the davenport.
-
-"Jennie," he said, "listen!"
-
-"Go away!" said Jennie.
-
-"I _am_ going away in a minute. But I want to tell you something
-first."
-
-Her sobbing ceased, but he waited till she asked:
-
-"Well, what?"
-
-"There _is_ somebody who loves you."
-
-Hopefully Jennie raised her head and turned her face to him--still oddly
-pretty in spite of the tear-streaked rouge. But after a moment's look
-she said resentfully:
-
-"It isn't you!"
-
-"No," said Merriam, "it isn't I."
-
-Even at this rate the discussion was apparently interesting enough to
-rouse her. With a sudden movement she curled herself up, half sitting,
-half reclining, in a corner of the davenport, and smoothed the crumpled
-skirts over her knees.
-
-"Do you mean George?" she asked.
-
-"No," said Merriam, "I mean Mr. Simpson."
-
-"_Mister_ Simpson!" She laughed derisively, not prettily at all. "A
-waiter!"
-
-"Listen, Jennie. Simpson is a fine fellow, with lots of brains and lots
-of courage. He has shown both within the last twenty-four hours. He's
-rendered a very important service to Mr. Rockwell and Senator Norman,
-and they're going to give him a lot of money for a reward. I don't know
-how much--maybe five thousand dollars. And he's crazy about you. He'll
-marry you in a minute if you'll let him, in spite of--George. He'll
-take you away on a fine trip--anywhere you want to go. And afterwards
-he'll set up in a business of his own--a cafe or whatever he likes.
-You'll have a real home and a husband and money enough and friends.
-It'll be a lot better than this stuff--like to-night. It really would.
-Think it over, Jennie!"
-
-On the last words he rose.
-
-"He's right!" cried Margery, who had drawn near.
-
-"Shut up, Marge!" said Jennie.
-
-But Merriam, looking closely at her with the sharp eye of a teacher to
-see whether or not his point had gone home, was satisfied. He was sure
-that she would think it over in spite of herself.
-
-He looked at his watch. It was ten minutes after one.
-
-"I must telephone at once to Mr. Rockwell in Senator Norman's rooms at
-the Hotel De Soto," he said to Margery.
-
-"Yes," said Margery. "The hotel number is Madison 1-6-8-1."
-
-"Thank you."
-
-Without looking again at Jennie, he went to the telephone in the dining
-room. In a moment he had the hotel and had asked to be connected with
-Senator Norman's rooms. It was Rockwell's voice that answered, "Hello!"
-
-"This is Merriam."
-
-"Thank God! Where are you?"
-
-"At Jennie's."
-
-"Still? What the devil was the ruction there when I called up?"
-
-"I'll tell you about that later. Do you still want me to come to the
-hotel?"
-
-"Certainly. As fast as you can."
-
-"You got the Senator back all right?"
-
-"Yes. But he's pretty sick. Caught more cold, I guess. Hobart's
-worried about him. You'll have to stay over another day all right. And
-make that speech."
-
-Merriam groaned.
-
-"Listen!" said Rockwell. "You'll have to be mighty careful about
-getting into the hotel. You aren't Senator Norman just now, you know.
-The Senator has already returned to the hotel, openly, with me, three
-hours ago, and is sick in his rooms. We'll have to smuggle you in
-without any one's seeing you. But I have a plan--or rather Simpson has.
-You'd better come down on the Elevated. That'll be better than a taxi
-this time. No chauffeur to tell on you. Be sure you get away from
-there without being followed. Margery'll show you a way. Get off at
-Madison and Wabash. Simpson will meet you there and smuggle you in the
-back way. You can come right away?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"Then for Heaven's sake come! We'll talk after you get here." He hung
-up.
-
-Merriam stared at the instrument as he slowly replaced his own receiver.
-Another day. "And make that speech!" Would this kaleidoscopic, unreal
-phantasm of adventures never end? When would he wake up? He perceived
-suddenly that he was very tired. But he must brace up sufficiently to
-get back to the hotel. There doubtless he would be permitted to go to
-bed and snatch at least a few hours' sleep--before the speech!
-
-He turned and found Margery standing between the portieres, watching
-him.
-
-"Well!" she said sharply.
-
-"I must--must--get dressed," he finished, realising for the first time
-since he had leapt out of bed with his revolver to divert Crockett from
-the telephone that he was attired only in pajamas. "Rockwell says you
-can tell me a way to get away from here without being seen by any
-watchers."
-
-"Yes," said Margery. "Go and dress. I'll attend to that."
-
-He went into the bedroom and began to get into his clothes, working
-mechanically.
-
-Presently he was ready--though with such a loose and rakish bow as he
-had never before disported--and emerged into the dining room.
-
-There he encountered a cheering spectacle. Margery was seated at the
-table between a coffee percolator, efficiently bubbling, and an electric
-toaster. She was buttering hot toast. Jennie sat at one side of the
-table. A pale blue kimono now covered her dancing costume, and she
-looked quite demure. She raised her eyes almost shyly as Merriam
-entered.
-
-"Well!" he exclaimed. "This is grand. Margery, you certainly are a
-trump!"
-
-Margery's rather sallow cheeks flushed slightly. "You'll need it," was
-all she said, and proceeded to fill a cup for him from the percolator.
-
-"How do I get away?" Merriam asked as he sipped.
-
-"Back stairs," said Margery succinctly. "I'll show you."
-
-Munching toast, he enquired the whereabouts of the nearest Elevated
-station and was duly instructed.
-
-He had a second cup of the black coffee. Margery did not take any and
-would not give Jennie any.
-
-"We go straight to bed," she said decidedly.
-
-From time to time Merriam cast an unwilling glance at Jennie, sitting
-downcast and out of it on Margery's other side. About the third time
-Jennie intercepted his glance and answered it with a small wistful
-smile. After that he would not look again. In a few minutes, of course,
-this very early breakfast--it was somewhere around two o'clock--was
-over, and Merriam rose.
-
-"I must be off," he said, and hesitated. "I am very much indebted to
-both of you for--all the help you have given me this evening!" (Inwardly
-he abused himself for his stiltedness; it was like his telling Mollie
-June he was glad to have helped her in algebra.)
-
-Jennie rose too and came around the table towards him. She had suddenly
-summoned back a smile, and she moved daintily inside the blue kimono.
-Above the stalk of that straight, demure, Japanesy blue, her head nodded
-like a bright blossom--with its fair, wavy hair, blue eyes, and
-childishly rounded cheeks, still gaudy with the remains of rouge.
-
-She tripped forward till she was almost touching Merriam, stopped, and
-suddenly raised her eyes to him.
-
-"Kiss me good-bye!" she said.
-
-We may suspect that it was a sort of point of honour with Jennie to
-retrieve the rebuff she had received in the sitting room. As for
-Merriam, in spite of the obvious deliberateness of this assault, I am
-not perfectly sure I could answer for him if it had not been for
-Margery. But Margery's presence saved him from serious temptation.
-
-Instead of stooping to kiss the lifted lips he caught Jennie's hand that
-hung at her side, and, stepping back half a step, raised the hand and
-kissed it.
-
-Sometimes the inspirations of youth are singularly happy. It seems to
-me that this one was of that kind: it involved neither yielding nor
-discourtesy.
-
-Jennie was somewhat taken aback, yet she could not be hurt by a gesture
-so gallant.
-
-"Good-bye, Jennie," he said. "I hope to be the best man at your wedding
-before long."
-
-"Oh!" she said, and withdrew her hand. Then: "Good-bye!"
-
-After a moment's hesitation and a last quite shy glance at Merriam she
-suddenly gathered up the skirts of the kimono and ran into the sitting
-room.
-
-"Are you ready?" said Margery dryly.
-
-"My coat. I haven't a hat," he added, remembering that under Rockwell's
-instructions he had left this article in the taxi in which they had come
-to the flat.
-
-"Your coat's in the hall," said Margery. "I can get you a hat too."
-
-The dining room was connected directly with the hallway, and in a moment
-Margery had returned with Merriam's light overcoat and with a man's
-derby--probably Norman's property.
-
-"Thank you," said Merriam, taking them.
-
-"This way," she replied, moving towards the kitchenette.
-
-In the kitchenette he was momentarily surprised to see Margery opening a
-tin box labeled "Bread." Was she going to equip him with a lunch? But
-she drew out, not a loaf, but the camera.
-
-"You'll want to take this along," she said.
-
-"Indeed, yes."
-
-Then he followed her out on to the back porch, where earlier--ages ago,
-it seemed--he had deposited the stepladder.
-
-"Now," said Margery, "you go down these stairs and diagonally across the
-court to that archway. See?" She pointed. "That brings you out on the
-other side of the block. Nobody will be looking for you there. And the
-Elevated station is three and one-half blocks west. Put on your hat and
-coat. I'll hold it."
-
-"Thank you so much," said Merriam, as the coat slipped on.
-
-Then he turned, took off his hat again, and held out his hand.
-
-"Good-bye, Margery," he said, shaking hands heartily. "Thank you--for
-everything."
-
-For a moment they looked at each other with mutual respect.
-
-Then Merriam said:
-
-"I'm going to send Simpson around to see Jennie. Shan't I?"
-
-"You can try it," said Margery. "Good-bye."
-
-She went back into the kitchenette and closed the door.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XXIII*
-
- *RETURN*
-
-
-"Madison and Wabash!" shouted the guard.
-
-Merriam started, picked up his camera, and made for the door. He had
-scarcely heard the other stations called and thanked his stars that he
-had waked up for this one.
-
-He descended the stairs from the Elevated platform and found Simpson
-waiting.
-
-"Good morning, Simpson."
-
-"Good morning."
-
-"Mr. Rockwell says you can get me into the hotel unnoticed."
-
-Simpson looked at him sideways, hesitated, then turned and started
-slowly west.
-
-Merriam fell into step beside him and for a moment wondered obtusely
-what ailed the man. Then he understood. Of course! He wanted news of
-Jennie. Perhaps he was suspicious as to how Merriam might have spent
-his time in that apartment. Perhaps he, like Margery, knew his Jennie
-only too well.
-
-To set his mind at rest, Merriam plunged at once into a sketchy summary
-of the events at the flat--Crockett's arrival--"almost as soon as you
-had left," he placed it--his own telling of his story--Crockett's being
-half convinced--Jennie's plan--the supper party (without reference to
-Jennie's change of costume or the dancing on the table)--Rockwell's
-telephone call--the tying up and the flash lights.
-
-"I have the films here," he added, exhibiting the camera as tangible
-evidence that he was not yarning. "Can you get them developed for me in
-the morning?"
-
-"Yes," said Simpson, in a much less frigid tone than before. He took
-the camera.
-
-"After Crockett had gone," Merriam continued smoothly, "I talked to
-Jennie about you. I told her she ought to marry you, and how well
-you've shown up in this affair, and that Senator Norman and Rockwell are
-going to pay you a bit of money for it, which you've certainly earned,
-and that you would take her away on a little trip anywhere she wanted to
-go, and then set up in a business of your own somewhere, and that she
-would be a lot happier that way than now."
-
-An older man, more sensitive to the dynamite in the situation, would
-probably have spoken less freely and less successfully. Whatever else
-Simpson may have felt, he could not question his companion's youthful
-candour and good will. After perhaps a dozen steps he spoke in a
-carefully controlled voice:
-
-"What did she say?"
-
-"She didn't answer me," lied Merriam. "I told her to think it over.
-She was impressed all right. And when I left I told Margery I was going
-to send you around."
-
-"What did Margery say?" asked Simpson quickly.
-
-"She said yes, you should come."
-
-Simpson drew a deep breath and stopped short at a corner.
-
-"I'm very much obliged to you, sir," he said, looking quickly at Merriam
-and quickly away again.
-
-Merriam held out his hand.
-
-"Good luck!" he said.
-
-Simpson grasped the hand and shook it intensely. Then, resuming his
-really admirable self-control, he said:
-
-"We turn down here. I'm going to take you up a fire escape. It's the
-only way. You can't go into a hotel in the regular way even at this
-time of night without being seen."
-
-They turned into an alley which ran behind the Hotel De Soto, and
-presently came to a door--a servants' entrance--in the ugly blank wall
-of yellow brick.
-
-Simpson opened the door, and they passed into a bare hallway,
-pine-floored, plaster-walled, lighted at intervals by unshaded,
-low-powered incandescents.
-
-Many doors of yellow pine opened on both sides of this hall, but
-Simpson, walking rapidly and quietly, passed them all, turned into a
-further stretch of hallway, narrower and still more dimly lighted, and
-stopped before a door of iron--evidently a fire door. He got out a key
-and unlocked this door, and they emerged into the air again in the inner
-court of the hotel, a great dismal well, the depository of drifts of
-soot, accentuated here and there by scraps of paper and other rubbish,
-and the haunt, for reasons difficult to understand, of the indomitable,
-grimy wild pigeons of the Loop.
-
-Simpson closed the iron door behind them and began a searching scrutiny
-of the rows of windows. All but half a dozen or so were dark. It looked
-safe.
-
-Satisfied, Simpson walked twenty feet or more along the side of the
-court and stopped below a fire escape. The platform at the lower end of
-the iron stairway was placed too high for a man to reach it from the
-ground unaided.
-
-"Give me a boost," said Simpson. He stooped and placed the camera on
-the ground.
-
-In a moment Merriam had hoisted him up, so that he could catch hold of
-the end of the platform and pull himself on to it. Then Simpson lay
-down on his stomach and dropped his arms over the edge of the platform.
-Merriam first handed up the camera and then with a little jump caught
-his hands and was drawn up until he in his turn could get hold of the
-edge of the landing and scramble on to it.
-
-A moment later they were erect and had begun stealthily to mount the
-narrow stairs.
-
-It seemed to Merriam that they went up interminably--a short flight--a
-turn--another short flight--along a platform past sleeping
-windows--another flight. He got out of breath, and began to feel very
-tired. The effect of Margery's coffee was wearing off.
-
-But at last Simpson stopped on one of the platforms and peered through a
-window. It was one of which the shades were not drawn at all and was
-open about two inches at the bottom.
-
-"This is it," said Simpson, and he stooped, opened the window, and
-climbed in.
-
-As soon as Merriam had followed, Simpson closed the window and drew the
-shade. Then he crossed the dark room and pushed a switch.
-
-"Where are we?" asked Merriam.
-
-"This room is next to Senator Norman's bedroom," said Simpson, "on the
-other side from the sitting room. The couple who had it left this
-evening, and Mr. Rockwell has taken it for you under the name of Wilson.
-Mr. Rockwell will be expecting us."
-
-He moved to a door at the side and knocked softly four times--once,
-twice, and once again.
-
-Almost immediately a key was turned on the other side, the door was
-opened, and Rockwell stood surveying them.
-
-There was only a dim light in the room behind him. With a glance over
-his shoulder at the bed where the sick Senator lay--the same bed in
-which Merriam had played at being sick on the previous afternoon,--he
-entered the new room and closed the door.
-
-"You've made it!" he said. "Thank Heaven! You weren't seen, Simpson?"
-
-"I think not, sir."
-
-He looked closely at Merriam. "You're tired," he said.
-
-"I sure am."
-
-"Well, so am I. What a day! And to-morrow will be as bad. Maybe
-worse. Never again will I father an impostor. But we've got to see it
-through this time. Sit down. Have a cigarette, and tell me what
-happened at the flat. Then I'll let you go to bed and snatch a few
-hours' sleep. You must be in fighting trim to-morrow, you know--for the
-speech!"
-
-Merriam took the proffered cigarette and dropped gratefully into a
-chair. Rockwell and Simpson also sat down.
-
-"How's Senator Norman?" Merriam asked.
-
-"Sick. Hobart looks serious, but he says he'll pull around in a day or
-two. He's dosing him heavily. You've simply got to stay by us and play
-the game until he's on his feet again."
-
-"I suppose so. Well----"
-
-He was about to repeat the summary of the events of his evening which he
-had already given Simpson, so as to get it over and get to bed. But
-before he could begin a knock sounded at the side door through which
-Rockwell had entered.
-
-Simpson went to the door and opened it. It was Dr. Hobart.
-
-"Miss Norman and Mrs. Norman want to come in," he said.
-
-Rockwell hesitated. No doubt he would have preferred to hear Merriam's
-story himself first, without even Aunt Mary present.
-
-Merriam meanwhile sat up, suddenly forgetting his fatigue: he was to see
-Mollie June still that night. He had not hoped for that.
-
-"I supposed they would have gone to bed," he said, to cover his
-involuntary show of interest.
-
-"No," said Rockwell. "After the dinner party they waited for me to come
-back with Norman, of course. Then he was so ill that Hobart kept us all
-busy for a couple of hours doing things. We didn't want to get in a
-nurse on account of--you, you know. And then they wanted to wait till
-you came. We expected you a long time ago. Well," he added, turning to
-the physician, "tell them to come along."
-
-It was at least a minute before they arrived. Merriam was oddly nervous.
-He had been through strange scenes since he had left Mollie June in the
-Peacock Cabaret, and she must have divined as much.
-
-They entered, Aunt Mary first with Mollie June behind her, and Merriam
-and Rockwell rose. The two women were dressed just as they had been at
-the dinner party--Aunt Mary in the black evening gown and Mollie June in
-the filmy rose. Mollie June looked just a little pale and tired, but
-Aunt Mary had not turned a hair.
-
-"Well, young man," began the older woman briskly, "you've kept us up
-till a pretty time of night. What was happening there where you were
-when Mr. Rockwell telephoned? Sit down and tell us."
-
-Evidently Aunt Mary, conscious of the ungodly hour, did not think it
-necessary to allow Merriam time for even a formal greeting of her young
-sister-in-law, who had stopped uncertainly in the doorway.
-
-But Merriam was not to be hurried to quite that degree, whatever the
-time of night or morning might be. He turned to Mollie June.
-
-"You're coming in, aren't you? Take this chair."
-
-He pushed a rocker towards her, concerned at her evident fatigue.
-
-She came forward and sat down, then raised her eyes to him with a grave
-"Thank you."
-
-For a moment Merriam did not understand that steady, unsmiling look.
-Then he thought he did understand. It had a questioning quality.
-Mollie June's mind was at ease now about her husband, since he was back
-and not supposed to be seriously ill, and she, like Simpson earlier, was
-wondering--not that it concerned her, of course--how Merriam had spent
-the night--so large a part of it--at Jennie's flat. She, too, knew
-Jennie, to the extent at least of having seen and in a measure
-comprehended her. Perhaps even in a Mollie June there is that which
-enables her to understand a Jennie and her lure for a youthful male. He
-remembered Mollie June's description of her and the cool detachment with
-which it had been uttered: "She's pretty and sweet, and--warm."
-
-For just an instant Merriam was slightly confused. He had verified that
-description--all of it.
-
-It is to be feared that his embarrassment, slight and merely
-instantaneous though it was, did not escape Mollie June. She dropped
-her eyes, still unsmiling.
-
-Merriam's second sketch of his evening's adventures differed from the
-one he had given Simpson in being fuller and in two particular points:
-first, of course, in omitting reference to his missionary efforts in
-Simpson's behalf, which, however laudable, were hardly for the ears of
-Mollie June; and, second, in including mention of Jennie's change into
-her ballet costume--because he realised as he talked that the pictures,
-to be developed in the morning, would exhibit that detail most
-unmistakably and that he would do well to prepare Mollie June's
-mind--and Simpson's, for that matter--in advance. But he laid his
-emphasis on the more dramatic episodes--the hurled revolver, the tying
-up, the flash lights, and Crockett's angry exit. He told it humorously
-and well, and was rewarded by Mollie June's interest. Her questioning
-gravity disappeared, and she followed him with eager attention and with
-a return of pretty colour to her cheeks.
-
-Aunt Mary and Rockwell--not to mention Simpson--also listened
-attentively. When Merriam had finished they looked at each other.
-
-"Well," said Rockwell, "I'm not sure but that it would have been better
-to let him go as soon as you had told him your yarn, but on the whole I
-think you did mighty well. Those pictures may come in handy."
-
-Aunt Mary rose. "You certainly are an enterprising young man, Mr.
-Merriam," she said dryly. "Now go to bed and get some sleep. You make
-your debut as an orator at noon, you know! Come, Mollie June."
-
-"Good night, Miss Norman," said Merriam, and he advanced to Mollie June,
-who had also risen.
-
-"Good night, Mrs. Mollie June." He dropped his voice for the last three
-words and held out his hand.
-
-She took it with an unconscious happy smile.
-
-"Good night--Mr. John," she said.
-
-Whatever she may have feared or suspected his story had established an
-alibi for him.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XXIV*
-
- *THE REFORM LEAGUE*
-
-
-"Quarter to ten," said Rockwell cheerily. "I've let you sleep to the
-last possible moment. Here's your breakfast on the stand. Better eat it
-and drink your coffee first. Then a shave and get at this." He
-indicated a small pile of manuscript on the writing table. "Your
-speech, Senator!" he grinned.
-
-"Good Lord!" groaned Merriam, remembering everything. He perceived also
-that he was to breakfast alone--no Mollie June. But the sight of the
-manuscript fascinated and aroused him. He realised, as he had not done
-before, that within a few hours he was to make a public address in a
-great Chicago club before many of the city's most prominent men and
-women--on what subject even he had no idea!
-
-"Good Lord!" he said again and put his feet out. "How's Senator
-Norman?" he asked.
-
-"Sleeping now," said Rockwell. "Hobart thinks he can get him on his
-feet by night. He's due to start for Cairo this evening, you know, on a
-stumping trip." Then quickly: "You'll find these sliced oranges
-refreshing. Have your bath first if you want to."
-
-Merriam was in the midst of his breakfast when Rockwell returned. "By
-the way," he said, "here are your pictures," and he took some unmounted
-prints from an envelope.
-
-Merriam reached for them with curiosity and something like trepidation.
-They were not good flash lights--a little blurred,--but the faces and
-attitudes were unmistakable. Jennie's foot and leg extending forward
-across the table were very much in evidence in the first of them.
-
-"Rather striking poses," commented Rockwell.
-
-"Jennie's invention," said Merriam defensively.
-
-"No doubt. Well, they could hardly be better for their purpose. I
-think Crockett will go slow all right."
-
-"Have--has Miss Norman seen them?"
-
-"Yes. And Simpson, of course." For a moment Rockwell quizzically
-regarded Merriam's face, in which a further unspoken question was
-anxiously plain. Then he answered it: "No one else. Mrs. Norman is
-still sleeping. I'm not sure Aunt Mary will consider them proper
-pictures for her to see anyway. Come," he added briskly, "you've eaten
-only one piece of toast. You must get outside of at least one more
-piece. And then shave. I'll strop your razor for you. I'm your valet
-this morning, Senator."
-
-With a sigh Merriam glanced at the waiting speech and tackled a second
-piece of toast, with the feeling that its mastication was a task of
-almost impossible difficulty. He achieved it, however, to the rhythmic
-accompaniment of Rockwell's stropping, consumed another cup of
-coffee--his third, I regret to say,--and proceeded to shave.
-
-At last Merriam was collared and tied and was slipping into his coat.
-Rockwell rose and laid down the manuscript.
-
-"Ready?" he said. "Very good. You can get to work. It's a quarter
-past ten. The luncheon is at twelve-thirty. But we shan't appear at
-the luncheon itself. Too dangerous. You'd have to meet a lot of men
-who know the Senator--meet them face to face in cold daylight and talk
-to them. We'd never get away with it. So I'll telephone that you've
-been detained by important business but will be in for the speeches.
-That way we'll come in by ourselves, with everybody else set and no
-opportunity for personal confabulations. You'll have to run the
-gauntlet of their eyes, of course. But you can do that."
-
-Earnestly for a moment he scrutinised Merriam's face and figure, as if
-to reassure himself that the astounding imposture had been and was still
-really possible.
-
-"Yes," he continued confidently, "that'll be all right. The speeches
-are scheduled to begin at one-fifteen. We'll leave here at five or ten
-minutes after one. That gives you nearly three hours to salt down the
-speech. You can learn it verbatim or only master the outline and
-substance and give it in your own words. Perhaps you'd better learn a
-good deal of it just as it is. Aunt Mary has it chock-full of the
-Senator's pet words and phrases. Your own style might be too different.
-Do you commit easily?"
-
-"Fairly so," said Merriam. As a matter of fact the speech itself
-presented few terrors to him. He had done a good deal of debating and
-declaiming in college, and of course in his capacity as principal of the
-high school he was called upon for "a few words" on every conceivable
-occasion in Riceville.
-
-"Good. Go to it, then. I'll make myself scarce. Here are cigarettes.
-You won't be disturbed. _Au revoir_, Senator! If you want anything,
-knock on this door. Either Hobart or I will answer."
-
-Grinning, Rockwell departed into the real, the sick Senator's, bedroom,
-leaving Merriam with the typewritten manuscript.
-
-He worked away for a couple of hours, sometimes sitting down, more often
-walking back and forth, occasionally refreshing himself with a
-cigarette, and faithfully learning by heart Aunt Mary's Senator Norman's
-speech on "Municipal Reform."
-
-By half past twelve he had mastered it to his satisfaction. He decided
-to go through with it once more by the clock. It was designed, as he
-knew from a pencil note at the top of the first page, to take thirty
-minutes. He did so, and came out at the end by five minutes to one.
-
-Evidently his delivery was a little more rapid than Senator Norman's.
-He must remember to speak slowly.
-
-He had just reached this conclusion when a knock sounded at the side
-door and Rockwell entered.
-
-"I've got it by heart," said Merriam.
-
-"Good! Come into the sitting room, then. You're to have a cup of coffee
-and a sandwich before you start."
-
-"Fine. I am a bit hollow. How's the Senator?"
-
-Rockwell looked worried, but answered, "Sleeping again now. Come along
-if you're ready."
-
-"In a minute."
-
-Merriam bathed his face and hands, folded the speech and put it in his
-pocket, and followed Rockwell across the Senator's bedroom, with just a
-glance at the sick man in the bed and a nod to Dr. Hobart, who sat by
-the window with a newspaper into the sitting room.
-
-After his morning of intense, solitary labour he was somewhat nonplused
-for a moment by the size of the company he found assembled there--Aunt
-Mary and Mollie June, of course, Alicia, Mr. Wayward, and Father Murray.
-He said good morning to each of them.
-
-Alicia reminded him that it was really afternoon now.
-
-"We shall meet Black in the car," said Rockwell. "Then the roll of the
-conspirators will be complete!"
-
-Mollie June, who had had no speech to learn, had slept late and was now
-as blooming as ever.
-
-"We're all going to hear you," she said as she gave Merriam her hand.
-
-"Good Heavens!" he said, with a twinge of the stage fright which he had
-thus far had no time to feel. "I shouldn't mind the others, but
-you----"
-
-He left that dangerous remark unfinished.
-
-To Aunt Mary he said: "I've learned the speech by heart. I admire it
-very much," and was pleased to note that even Aunt Mary had an author's
-susceptibility to praise.
-
-Meanwhile Simpson, who was in attendance, had poured out a cup of
-coffee, and Mollie June brought it to him with a sandwich on a plate.
-
-"Won't you sit down to eat it?" she asked, regarding him with a look of
-awe which flattered him enormously and served to quiet his rising
-nervousness.
-
-(Mollie June had taken oratory of all degrees and on all possible
-occasions on the part of Norman as a matter of course, but the thought
-that John Merriam, who was only a little older than herself and had
-taken her to "sociables" and had wanted to make love to her but had not
-dared, was about to address the distinguished Urban Club of Chicago at
-one of its formidable luncheons filled her with admiration.)
-
-"Thank you," he said, taking the coffee and the sandwich. "No, I think
-I'll eat it standing." But he smiled at her with the confidence which
-her admiration had given him, thereby increasing the admiration--a
-pleasing psychological circle.
-
-But now Rockwell was at his side and barely gave him time to finish his
-sandwich and gulp down the coffee.
-
-"Miss Norman and the Senator and I go with Mayor Black in the Senator's
-car," said that master of ceremonies and conspiracies. "The other four
-of you are to follow in the Mayor's machine. Here's your coat and hat."
-
-Along the hall--down in the elevator--through the lobby to the
-pavement--Merriam had only a dazed sense of being part of an
-irresistible, conspicuous procession which was carrying him whither he
-had no strong desire to go.
-
-A limousine was already drawn up at the curb, and the hotel starter was
-deferentially holding the door.
-
-Mayor Black was already within the car.
-
-"Ah, Senator," the Mayor ejaculated, "I'm glad to see you up again, and
-to have you--really you--coming to the Reform League!"
-
-For an instant Merriam did not understand. Then he realised that the
-Mayor thought he was addressing the real Senator Norman. It was a good
-omen for the continued success of his impersonation.
-
-He sank into the seat opposite the Mayor, who was facing forward with
-Aunt Mary beside him. Rockwell climbed in and sat next to Merriam. The
-door slammed, and the machine started.
-
-Then, as the Mayor still beamed at him and as neither of the others
-spoke, Merriam said gently:
-
-"I'm still the impostor, I'm afraid, Mr. Mayor."
-
-"Eh!"
-
-The Mayor leaned forward to scrutinise his face and then turned as if
-bewildered and still unconvinced to Rockwell.
-
-"Yes," said Rockwell. "I tried to get you on the 'phone this morning,
-but your line was busy, and I didn't have a chance to try again. The
-Senator is still sick. Worse, in fact. Mr. Merriam is going to keep
-the Senator's engagement at the Urban Club for him."
-
-"My God!" cried the Mayor. "Speak before all those people! You never
-can do it!"
-
-"Yes, we can," said Rockwell, with smiling serenity. "You were fooled
-again yourself just now," he pointed out.
-
-The Mayor groaned. "Then we still don't know where Senator Norman
-himself will stand when he's up," he said.
-
-"I telephoned you yesterday that he had agreed to everything," said Aunt
-Mary coldly. "That was true."
-
-"While he was sick," said Black. "Will he stick to it when he's well
-again?"
-
-"He'll have to stick," said Rockwell. "Ten times more so after this
-speech. He can't possibly go back on that."
-
-"If this Mr.--Mr. Merriam," said the Mayor, eyeing him with profound
-dislike, "is unmasked at the Urban Club, it would be the utter ruin of
-us all."
-
-"It undoubtedly would," replied Rockwell cheerfully. "All the more
-reason why we should all keep a stiff upper lip and play up for him."
-
-"No!" cried the Mayor. "It's insane! Stop the car! I'll step into the
-nearest store and telephone that the Senator has fainted in the cab and
-can't appear. Anything is better than this awful risk."
-
-He put out his hand for the cord to signal to the chauffeur. But
-Rockwell roughly struck his arm down.
-
-"Sit still!" he commanded savagely. "Do you want us to choke you again?
-This car goes on to the Urban Club. Senator Norman has a fine speech,
-and he'll make it well. No one will suspect. The thing has the one
-essential characteristic of successful imposture--boldness to the point
-of impossibility. If any one notices any slight change in his
-appearance or voice or manner, it will be put down to his illness. It
-will cinch the whole thing as nothing else could. You've got to go
-through with it, Mayor."
-
-Mr. Black groaned again and relapsed into a dismal silence.
-
-Fortunately he did not have long to brood, nor Merriam long to work up
-the nervousness which this dialogue had naturally renewed in him. In a
-couple of minutes after the Mayor's second and more lamentable groan the
-limousine stopped before the imposing entrance of the Urban Club.
-
-"Sit tight, Mayor!" Rockwell warned.
-
-Then the doorman of the Club opened the car, and Rockwell descended and
-helped Aunt Mary out and Merriam and the Mayor followed.
-
-Inside their coats and the men's hats were quickly taken from them by
-efficient checkroom boys, and they were guided immediately to the
-elevator. The speeches had already begun upstairs, some one said.
-
-They stepped out into the hallway outside the Club's big dining room.
-From inside came the noise of clapping. Some one had just finished
-speaking.
-
-"This is our chance," said Rockwell, meaning doubtless that they could
-best enter during the interlude between speeches. "Go ahead, Senator.
-Take the Mayor's arm!"
-
-In a moment they were passing through a group of tuxedoed servants at
-the door. Merriam was conscious of a large room in pleasant tones of
-brown with a low raftered ceiling and many windows of small leaded
-panes. The tables were arranged in the form of a great horseshoe, with
-the closed end--the speakers' table--opposite the door. The horseshoe
-was lined inside and out with guests, perhaps two hundred in all--men
-who looked either distinguished or intelligent, occasionally both, and
-women who were either distinguished or intelligent or beautiful--from
-some points of view the great city's best.
-
-Then came the turning of many eyes to look at himself and Mayor Black,
-and the toastmaster at the center of the speakers' table rose and called
-to them:
-
-"Senator! Mayor! This way."
-
-He pointed to two empty chairs on either side of his own.
-
-Merriam nodded, and, still propelling the semi-comatose Black, circled
-one side of the horseshoe, giving the line of guests as wide a berth as
-he could, to avoid possible contretemps from personal greetings to which
-he might be unable to make suitable response.
-
-Arrived at the speakers' table, he shook hands warmly with the
-toastmaster--a bald, benevolent-looking man of much aplomb, whose name
-he never learned--and with two or three other men from nearby
-chairs--evidently personal acquaintances of Senator Norman's--who rose
-to welcome him, making talk the while of apologies for being late.
-Presently he found himself seated at the toastmaster's right, facing the
-distinguished company. No one had betrayed any suspicion. The
-imposture was, in fact, as Rockwell had said, so bold as to be
-unthinkable.
-
-Mayor Black had meanwhile been seated at the toastmaster's left, and
-Rockwell and Aunt Mary had been guided to two vacant seats at the left
-end of the speakers' table. The necessity of greeting friends had
-somewhat roused the Mayor, who had found his tongue and managed to
-respond, though for him haltingly.
-
-The toastmaster leaned towards Merriam and whispered:
-
-"You're to speak last, Senator. Colonel Edwards is next, then Mayor
-Black, then you."
-
-With that he rose and felicitated the company on the arrival of the two
-distinguished servants of the City and the Nation between whom he now
-had the honour to sit.
-
-He then introduced Colonel Edwards, a stout, quite unmilitary-looking
-gentleman, who was earnestly interested and mildly interesting on the
-subject of good roads for the space of fifteen minutes.
-
-Merriam's attention was distracted almost at the beginning of Colonel
-Edwards' speech by the arrival at the entrance of the dining room, now
-directly opposite him, of the second taxi-load from the hotel. Alicia
-caught Merriam's eye and smiled at him mischievously. Evidently she was
-enjoying the situation to the full. Mollie June, on the other hand,
-though deliciously crowned with a small blossomy hat of obvious
-expensiveness, was entirely grave, her eyes fixed almost too steadily
-and too anxiously on our youthful hero, where he sat in the seats of the
-mighty, outwardly at least as much at ease as if he had been accustomed
-for thirty years to find himself at the speakers' table of historic
-clubs.
-
-Colonel Edwards suddenly sat down. He was one of those rare public
-speakers who occasionally disconcert their audiences by stopping when
-they are through.
-
-The toastmaster gasped, but rose to his feet and the occasion and called
-upon Mayor Black.
-
-As the Mayor slowly rose Merriam was most uncomfortably
-anxious--uncertain whether the city's chief executive was even yet
-sufficiently master of himself to face an audience successfully. But
-Mr. Black was one of those gentlemen, not uncommon in public life, who
-are apparently more at ease before an audience than in any other
-situation. His great mellow voice boomed forth, and Merriam relaxed.
-That speech was hardly, perhaps, one of the Mayor's masterpieces. But
-that mattered little, of course. He produced an admirably even flow of
-head tones. It _sounded_ like a perfectly good speech.
-
-Merriam, at any rate, was quite oblivious of any lack of strict logical
-coherence in the Mayor's remarks. He was suddenly smitten by the
-realisation that his own turn came next. For a moment he fought a panic
-of blankness, then mentally grabbed at the opening sentences of what he
-had so carefully committed during the morning. Outwardly serene and
-attentive to the speaker, inwardly he hastily rehearsed his first half
-dozen paragraphs, and, winking his eyes somewhat rapidly perhaps, fixed
-the outline of the rest of it in his mind.
-
-The Mayor rose to a climax of thunderous tone and eloquent gesture and
-sat. Loud applause followed.
-
-Across the clapping hands Merriam glanced at Mr. Wayward and Alicia and
-Mollie June where they sat at one side of the horseshoe. The other two
-were clapping, but Mollie June was not. He thought she looked pale, but
-of course he was too far away to be sure. "She is afraid for me," he
-thought, and gratitude for her interest mingled with a fine resolve to
-show her that she had no cause for fear--that he would give a good
-account of himself anywhere--for her.
-
-The glow of that resolution carried him through the ordeal of the
-toastmaster's introduction and brought him to his feet with smiling
-alacrity at the proper moment.
-
-The applause was hearty. There is magic still, strange as it may seem,
-in the word "senator." He was forced to bow again and again.
-
-Then he struck into his speech--Aunt Mary's speech. He found himself
-letter-perfect. He had at least half his mind free to attend to his
-delivery. He gave it slowly, impressively, grandly facing first one part
-of his audience and then another. George Norman himself before packed
-galleries in the Senate Chamber at Washington had never done better. And
-it was a good speech, deftly conceived, clearly reasoned, aptly worded.
-Merriam himself in all his morning's study of it had not realised how
-perfectly it was adapted to the occasion and the audience. Down at the
-far end of the speakers' table, the female author of it sat unnoticed,
-watching with tight-pressed lips its effect; her only right to be there,
-if any one had asked you, the accident of her relationship to the
-wonderful Senator.
-
-He reached the end. As he rounded out the last sentence his eyes rested
-triumphantly for a second on Mollie June. Whether or not her cheeks had
-been pale before, they were flushed now. He sat down.
-
-The room rocked. The applause this time was no mechanical reaction. It
-was an ovation. The toastmaster leaped to his feet with ponderous
-agility and grabbed for Merriam's hand. The latter found himself
-standing, the center of a group of excited men, all of whom he must
-pretend to know, overwhelming him with congratulations.
-
-Behind him he caught a remark that was doubtless not intended for his
-ears: "How the devil does he keep his youthful looks and fire? He might
-be twenty-five!"
-
-Then Rockwell charged into the group, excited himself, but persistent
-with the formula, "Pressing engagement," and got him out of the room,
-and into the elevator, and through the hallway on the first floor, with
-his hat and coat restored, and into the limousine, which darted away for
-the hotel.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XXV*
-
- *SECOND COUNCIL OF WAR*
-
-
-Merriam and Rockwell were alone in the Senator's car.
-
-Merriam leaned back against the cushions and closed his eyes. He was at
-once fatigued and excited. It almost seemed to him that he was still
-addressing the Urban Club. Then he seemed to be talking still but to a
-single auditor--a girl with flushed cheeks and eyes that shone with
-excited pride.
-
-He opened his eyes. Rockwell was regarding him steadily. "I don't
-wonder you feel done up," he said. "It was splendid, my boy. You spoke
-like a veteran. You ought to go into public life on your own. Perhaps
-you will." He seemed to meditate. Then: "You saw Crockett, I suppose?"
-
-"No!" exclaimed Merriam.
-
-"Didn't you? He was seated six places to your right at the speakers'
-table. Right in line with you, of course. Not strange you missed him.
-Just as well, perhaps. It might have shaken even _your_ nerve."
-
-The phrase "even _your_ nerve" was pleasant praise to Merriam. He had
-never thought of himself as possessed of any exceptional _sang froid_.
-But perhaps he had behaved with rather creditable composure in a trying
-situation.
-
-"_He_ was shaken, I can tell you," Rockwell was saying. "Lord, I was on
-pins! I didn't know but what when you rose to speak he would jump up
-and denounce you. But not he. He simply lay back and stared and kept
-moistening his lips. I suppose he couldn't make up his mind for sure
-whether you were the Senator or the double or whether he himself had
-gone crazy or not. We'll hear from him, though," he added reflectively.
-
-"I suppose so," said Merriam wearily. "I wish to Heaven we were clean
-through the thing!" That feeling had come suddenly, and for the moment
-he meant it, though he was having the time of his life.
-
-"So do I," said Rockwell heartily. "But we're not. Not by a long shot.
-So you must buck up. Here's the hotel. You shall have a real meal now.
-That'll put heart into you again."
-
-The machine stopped, and the door was opened.
-
-"Quick time, now!" Rockwell whispered.
-
-Senator Norman and his new political manager, Mr. Rockwell of the Reform
-League, rushed almost precipitately into the lobby of the Hotel De Soto
-and made a bee line for the nearest elevator. It was obvious that
-important business urgently called them, for they merely nodded
-hurriedly in response to several cordial salutations.
-
-As the elevator shot up Rockwell leaned heavily against the side of the
-car, took off his hat, though there was no one with them, drew a deep
-breath, and comically winked both eyes at Merriam.
-
-"What a life!" he ejaculated.
-
-Stepping out at Floor Three, they were greeted by the spectacle of Dr.
-Hobart bending over the floor clerk's desk and evidently having a
-delightful tete-a-tete with the handsome young mistress of that sanctum,
-whose eyes were coquettishly raised to his, though her head was slightly
-bent--for she was smelling an American Beauty rose. A large vase of the
-same expensive flowers adorned one corner of her desk.
-
-Only a momentary glimpse did Merriam and Rockwell have of this pretty
-tableau, for Dr. Hobart at once straightened up as if in some
-embarrassment and came towards them.
-
-"I was just thinking it was about time for you to be back," he said,
-though he surely did not expect them to believe that he had just been
-thinking anything of the sort.
-
-The pretty floor clerk, no whit nonplused, bowed and smiled at Rockwell.
-But she studiously failed to observe Senator Norman's presence.
-
-Dr. Hobart walked down the hall with them.
-
-"How's Norman?" Rockwell asked.
-
-"No better, I'm afraid," said the physician apologetically. "He has a
-high fever, and a while ago he was slightly delirious. I had to give
-him more of the drug. He's sleeping again now. Simpson is with him, of
-course."
-
-"Damn!" said Rockwell, with a sort of deliberate earnestness.
-
-They reached the sitting room and entered it. There was no one there.
-Simpson was apparently in the Senator's bedroom. Merriam dropped into a
-chair and closed his eyes again. Rockwell walked across to a window and
-stood staring out. Dr. Hobart stopped uncertainly in the middle of the
-room and fiddled with a cigarette without being able to make up his mind
-to light it. For several moments none of them spoke.
-
-But Rockwell was not the man to remain long in any apathy of inaction.
-He turned suddenly, and Merriam, whom the prolonged unnatural silence
-had caused to open his eyes, saw that he had made up his mind to
-something.
-
-"Hobart," he said, "I suppose Simpson isn't practically necessary in
-there." He indicated the sick room.
-
-"N-no," said Dr. Hobart, "I suppose not. He's just watching. Norman
-will sleep soundly for some time."
-
-"Then ask him to come here, will you?"
-
-The physician disappeared into the bedroom and in a moment returned with
-Simpson.
-
-"Simpson," said Rockwell, "we're going to have a meal here, for nine
-people. A luncheon, if you like. But make it hearty. Choose the stuff
-yourself, and serve it as quickly as you can, please."
-
-For a moment Simpson stared. Then, as if remembering a nearly forgotten
-cue, he replied submissively, "Yes, sir," and turned to the door.
-
-As that door closed behind Simpson, Merriam suddenly stood up.
-
-"I must send a telegram to Riceville," he said, starting for the writing
-table for a blank.
-
-"Wait a bit," said Rockwell. "You can send it just as well an hour from
-now."
-
-Merriam was disposed to argue, but just then the rest of their party
-trooped in, having returned to the hotel in Mayor Black's car.
-
-Alicia walked straight up to Merriam, gay with enthusiasm, caught his
-hand, and squeezed it.
-
-"My dear boy," she cried, "it was perfectly splendid! I've half a mind
-to kiss you!"
-
-"Please do," said Merriam.
-
-"I will," said Alicia promptly, and before the young man could realise
-what was happening she had put her gloved hands on his shoulders and
-kissed him on one cheek.
-
-Merriam was vastly astonished. In the circles in which he had moved in
-Riceville or even at college, his remark could have been taken only as a
-daring pleasantry. But he undoubtedly had _sang froid_, for he
-concealed his confusion, or most of it, and said:
-
-"Let me turn the other cheek."
-
-"Oh, I mustn't be a pig," said Alicia. "I'll leave the other cheek for
-Mollie June."
-
-At this Merriam's confusion became, I fear, perfectly apparent, for the
-remainder of the party had followed Alicia into the room and were
-grouped about him.
-
-"Kiss him quick, Mollie dear," said the incorrigible Alicia, thereby
-causing confusion in a second person present.
-
-But Mayor Black, no longer to be restrained, saved the situation. He
-seized Merriam's hand and pumped it.
-
-"One of the best speeches I ever heard the Senator make!" he asserted,
-in tones which Merriam feared might rouse the real Senator in the
-adjoining room.
-
-Mr. Wayward meanwhile was patting him on the back and murmuring, "Fine!
-Excellent!"
-
-Merriam turned to Aunt Mary:
-
-"I tried to do it justice," he said.
-
-"You gave it exceedingly well," said Aunt Mary, with less reserve than
-he had ever seen her exhibit before.
-
-"Indeed you did!" cried Mollie June earnestly, her eyes shining with
-sincerity.
-
-And that tribute, from the least qualified judge of them all, was, I
-regret to state, the one which young Merriam treasured the most.
-
-Simpson, who had worked with amazing alacrity, and even inspired his
-assistants to celerity had completed his preparations and announced that
-he was ready to serve the luncheon.
-
-Rockwell delayed the meal for several minutes the sake of an apparently
-important conference into which he had drawn Mr. Wayward and the Mayor
-over by the window.
-
-Presently, however, they all sat down, with Merriam beside Mollie June.
-The luncheon passed, as luncheons do, in small talk and anecdote.
-
-At last Rockwell, having finished the last morsel of a piece of French
-pastry, laid down his fork and fixed his eyes significantly on Mr.
-Wayward, who was in mid-career with something like his fifteenth
-anecdote. Mr. Wayward faltered but rallied and finished his story. It
-was the best one he had told, but there was only perfunctory laughter.
-Every one about the table was looking at Rockwell, realising that at
-last the great question that was in all their minds, "What are we to do
-next?" was to be discussed and decided. Simpson, it should be added,
-had dismissed his assistants as soon as the dessert course was served,
-so that only the initiated were present.
-
-Three times during the meal Dr. Hobart had left the table to enter the
-sick room. On the second occasion he had remained away some minutes.
-Rockwell now turned to him.
-
-"Give us your report, Doctor," he said abruptly.
-
-"Well," replied the physician, "he is better. Half an hour ago he was
-awake for perhaps five minutes. His temperature is lower, though he
-still has some fever. He is sleeping again now, more quietly than at
-any time since he returned to the hotel. In short, he is doing as well
-as could be expected. But it is out of the question for him to start on
-that speech-making tour this evening."
-
-"Undoubtedly," said Aunt Mary, with much decision.
-
-"Just so," said Rockwell. "That being the case, two alternatives
-present themselves: to announce his illness and call off the trip, or to
-go on playing the game as we have begun, with Mr. Merriam's help."
-
-Merriam gasped and opened his mouth to protest, but Rockwell waved him
-down.
-
-"The Mayor and Mr. Wayward and I have been discussing the matter. At
-first blush, there may seem to be little question as to which of these
-two courses we should pursue. Having come safely--so far as we know at
-least--through all the perils of discovery thus far, it may seem that we
-should tempt fortune no further, but let Mr. Merriam return to his
-school, publish the fact of the Senator's illness, and cancel the
-speaking engagements."
-
-"Surely yes," interjected Merriam, and Aunt Mary and Father Murray and
-Mollie June and even Alicia seemed to assent.
-
-"On further consideration," Rockwell continued imperturbably, "I think
-you will all see that the thing is not so clear. The course I have just
-suggested may be--doubtless is--the more prudent one, if prudence were
-all, but it is decidedly unfair to George Norman."
-
-At this Aunt Mary almost visibly pricked up her ears.
-
-"In his name," Rockwell went on, "we have thrown over the conservative
-wing of the party, with whom he has always stood and who have supported
-him--have 'betrayed' them, as they will put it, in this traction matter
-and in aligning him with the Reform League. We did so on the theory
-that he was to appeal to the people and to come back stronger than ever
-as the leader of the new and growing progressive element, which is sure
-to be dominant in the next election if only they can find such a leader
-as Norman could be. But if we cancel this trip and let him drop out of
-the campaign, if we stop now, where will he be? He will have lost his
-old backers and will not have made new ones. He will be politically
-dead. We shall have played absolutely into the hands of Crockett and
-Thompson and the rest of the gang, and shall have accomplished nothing
-but the political ruin of George Norman."
-
-All the persons about the table except Mayor Black and Mr. Wayward
-stared hard at Rockwell as this new view of their predicament sank into
-their minds. The Mayor and Mr. Wayward smiled and nodded and watched
-the effect on the others. Particularly they watched Merriam, who sat
-dumfounded and vaguely alarmed. What new entanglements was Rockwell
-devising for him? He must get back to Riceville. Involuntarily--he
-could not have said why--he cast a quick glance at Mollie June, and
-encountered a similar glance from her. They both looked away in
-confusion.
-
-Aunt Mary spoke:
-
-"Tell us your plan."
-
-It was like her--that masterful acceptance, without comment, of the
-situation.
-
-"My plan, as you call it," said Rockwell, fixing his eyes not on Aunt
-Mary but on Merriam, "is simply that we should go on for another day or
-two as we have begun--play the game for George until he can take the
-cards in his own hands. This is Thursday. He is scheduled to leave
-this evening for Cairo, to speak there at nine o'clock to-morrow
-morning, to go on to East St. Louis for a talk before the Rotary Club at
-noon, and then up to Springfield for an address in the evening. Is that
-correct?"
-
-"Yes," said Aunt Mary. "And he was to speak in Bloomington and Peoria
-on Saturday and in Moline and Freeport on Sunday."
-
-"The speeches are all ready, I believe?"
-
-"Yes. George and I outlined them together some time ago, and I have
-them written and typed."
-
-"Exactly. Turn the manuscripts over to Mr. Merriam as you did this
-morning. He will have time on the train on the way to each place to
-master the speech to be given at that point. We shall take a special
-car. Mr. Wayward and I will go with him. You"--he was addressing Aunt
-Mary--"and the Mayor and Dr. Hobart--and Simpson," he added, glancing up
-at the waiter, who stood listening in the background,--"and the rest of
-you will stay here to guard George. That will be easy when the
-newspapers are full of his speeches out in the State."
-
-"Mr. Crockett will know," said Father Murray timidly.
-
-"He may suspect," said Rockwell with a grin. "But if you keep every one
-away from George--conceal his presence here,--he can't be sure whether
-it's George himself or his double who is speech-making over the State.
-And if he were sure, he wouldn't dare denounce him. Thanks to Mr.
-Merriam's clever trick last night, he has a particularly strong reason
-for keeping his mouth shut. If on the other hand we give up and lie
-down--cancel the trip,--he can easily start all manner of nasty stories
-about his escapades. I'm sorry to say it, but George has a pretty
-widespread sporting reputation." Rockwell glanced apologetically at
-Mollie June, but continued. "When a man with such a character is laid
-up, people are ready to believe anything except that he is really
-legitimately sick. Things will be safer here than they would be if we
-abandoned our trick. And our part out in the State will be 'nuts,'
-compared to what it was at the Urban Club this noon, for instance. Very
-few people out there know Norman well. There is no question at all that
-Mr. Merriam will get by. And we know from this noon that he will make
-the speeches in fine shape."
-
-"The speeches will need to be altered a bit," said Aunt Mary, "if they
-are to appeal to the progressives."
-
-"Mr. Merriam can attend to that on the train," said Rockwell. "Soften
-the standpattism and throw in some progressive dope. Can't you?" He
-appealed to Merriam.
-
-"I suppose I could," said Merriam, "but--my school."
-
-"I know," said Rockwell, "but it will be only a day or two longer.
-We'll telegraph again, of course. If you were really sick, as we've
-been telling them, they'd have to get along, wouldn't they? You've got
-to see us through. We must keep the ball rolling. It will probably be
-only one more day. George will be able to travel to-morrow, I presume?"
-he asked of Dr. Hobart. "By noon, anyway?"
-
-"By noon, I hope," said the physician with cheerful optimism.
-
-"You see?" said Rockwell. "George can catch the noon train for
-Springfield and get there in time to take on the evening speech. Mr.
-Merriam will have made the two at Cairo and East St. Louis. He can go
-back to Riceville from Springfield."
-
-Just then the telephone rang, and I believe every person in the room
-jumped.
-
-Rockwell rose to answer it.
-
-"Senator Norman? Yes, he is here. But he is engaged. This is Mr.
-Rockwell, his manager. You can give the message to me."
-
-A moment later he put his hand over the receiver and turned to Merriam.
-
-"He insists on speaking to the Senator. You'll have to answer. I think
-it's Crockett. For Heaven's sake, be careful!"
-
-Merriam took the receiver:
-
-"Hello!"
-
-A voice which he remembered only too well from the night before at
-Jennie's replied:
-
-"This is Mr. Crockett, I have the honour, I believe, of speaking to Mr.
-Merriam."
-
-"You have the wrong number!" said Merriam and hung up.
-
-But before he had had time to explain to the others or even to wonder
-whether he had done wisely, the bell jangled again. He turned back to
-the instrument. Rockwell came quickly to his side, and Merriam, taking
-down the receiver, held it so that his "manager" too should be able to
-hear what came over the wire.
-
-"Hello!"
-
-"Ah! Senator Norman, by your voice," said Crockett in tones of
-elaborate irony. "I wish to congratulate you, Senator, on your speech
-this noon. It was a magnificent effort. So full of progressive ideas
-and youthful virility!"
-
-"Thank you," said Merriam.
-
-"And, Senator, I really must see you right away. I am calling from the
-lobby. I will come up to your rooms at once, if I may. Or meet you
-anywhere else you say. It is of the utmost importance to you, Mr.
-Mer----" (he pretended to correct himself) "to you, Senator, as well as
-to me."
-
-"Wait a minute," said Merriam. He put his hand over the mouthpiece and
-looked at Rockwell.
-
-"Tell him you will see him at eight o'clock this evening, here."
-
-Merriam repeated this message.
-
-"At _eight_?" said Crockett, with significant emphasis on the hour.
-"Very good, Senator. Thank you." He hung up.
-
-Rockwell and Merriam turned to the others. Aunt Mary and the rest had
-risen. They were standing by their places about the table, looking
-rather scared.
-
-"_Eight_ o'clock?" questioned Aunt Mary, with an emphasis similar to
-Crockett's.
-
-"Yes," said Rockwell doggedly. "Because"--he addressed Merriam--"your
-train goes at seven. At seven-thirty Miss Norman shall telephone
-Crockett, expressing your regret that you overlooked the fact that you
-would have to be gone by that time. Man alive!" he cried. "Don't you
-see? The Senator can't be sick now--after your public appearance this
-noon. Half the people who count in Chicago saw you--him, there--right
-as a trivet--obviously perfectly well. And we can't keep _you_ here,
-with Crockett and Thompson continually nosing 'round. There's nothing
-for it but for you to start on that trip. The trip's a godsend. Write
-your telegram to Riceville!"
-
-Merriam glanced around the circle of faces. Mad as the thing was, they
-all seemed to agree with Rockwell. Mayor Black and Mr. Wayward and even
-Simpson seemed to be asking him, as man to man, to stand by them.
-Father Murray was timidly expectant. Dr. Hobart, he noticed, was
-staring down at the table as if in thought. Aunt Mary, looking him full
-in the eyes, gave an affirmative nod. Alicia's eyes and shoulders
-registered appeal as conspicuously as if she had been a movie actress.
-And Mollie June seemed to be begging him not to desert her.
-
-With a gesture of resignation he went over to the writing table and sat
-down to compose his third mendacious telegram to Riceville.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XXVI*
-
- *THE BUSINESS OF BEING AN IMPOSTOR*
-
-
-The writing of that telegram occupied Merriam for several minutes. He
-was distracted by scruples. He did not like lying, and he felt, truly
-enough, that he was cheating his employers, the Board of Education of
-Riceville, and the patrons of the school, and his boys and girls, by
-staying away from the work he was paid to do.
-
-When, after a last momentary hesitation, he wrote his name and looked
-up, he found Simpson standing by him, ready to take the message. He
-noticed the man's new air of cheerfulness.
-
-But he had no time to reflect on this phenomenon, for the party was
-breaking up.
-
-There were four of them left--Merriam and Rockwell, Aunt Mary and Mollie
-June.
-
-"Well," said Rockwell, with a sigh, "we're off again. You'd better go
-to your own room--Mr. Wilson's room. I promised the reporters to see
-them at half past four, and it's nearly that now. You'll need to pack.
-Take these speeches with you. I'll let you know when the taxi comes."
-
-In a moment Merriam was crossing the Senator's room. Involuntarily he
-cast a glance at the sick man in the bed. In a small chair by the head
-of the bed Mollie June was sitting, her eyes on her husband. She looked
-up as Merriam traversed the room, met his gaze soberly for an instant,
-and then looked back at Norman.
-
-Merriam passed through the door on the other side into his own room. He
-closed the door softly behind him, set the portfolio on a chair, and put
-his hand to his forehead. The tiny connubial tableau of which he had
-just had a glimpse had brought home to him, as nothing before had done,
-the fact that Mollie June really was another man's wife. The acute
-realisation left him blank. He crossed over, sank into a chair by the
-window, and stared out across the fire escape. Another man's wife! And
-he loved her. Of course he loved her, just as he had always done. And
-she loved him, a little at least. That such a thing should happen to
-him--and her! Because he had been a coward three years ago in
-Riceville!
-
-How long he sat dully revolving such thoughts as these he had no idea.
-He was startled by the opening of the door from the Senator's bedroom.
-He sprang to his feet with the involuntary thought that it might be
-Mollie June--though of course she would have knocked. It was Simpson.
-
-"Shall I pack your things, sir?"
-
-"Why--yes," said Merriam.
-
-He knew from novels that the valet of the hero always packs his bag.
-Evidently Simpson had come in this capacity. To Merriam's American
-self-sufficiency it seemed an absurd practice. Why shouldn't any man
-put his own things into a grip for himself? But he was glad of company.
-
-"You can help," he added, and took a couple of steps in the direction of
-the bureau, with the idea of taking things out of drawers.
-
-"Oh, don't bother, sir!" said Simpson quickly. In his tone there was
-something subtly patronising. For he who has been a butler and a waiter
-and a valet among the real elite feels even himself to be socially
-superior to the unbutlered and unvaleted.
-
-"Simpson," said Merriam suddenly, "you've seen Jennie!"
-
-Simpson stopped absolutely still for a moment with a couple of folded
-shirts in his hands. Then he placed the shirts in the suit case,
-straightened up, and looked at Merriam.
-
-"Yes, Mr."--he hesitated and decided to use the real name--"yes, Mr.
-Merriam, I have. I went out there this morning, as you suggested."
-
-"She let you in?"
-
-"Yes she did. She let me sit down on the sofa with her, and we had a
-long talk. I ended by asking her again to marry me--and she said she
-would."
-
-"And she kissed you!" Merriam cried gaily. He had for the moment
-forgotten his own troubles in Simpson's happiness, for which he rightly
-felt he might claim some credit, and in an appreciative recollection of
-Jennie's temperament. Within a dozen hours she had also kissed Crockett
-and himself. But Jennie was born to kiss.
-
-Simpson looked quickly at the younger man and returned to his packing.
-"Yes," he said, "she did."
-
-Merriam regretted his exclamation, which had, in fact, told too much.
-For several minutes he watched in silence the deft, efficient work of
-his companion. Then he asked:
-
-"When is it to be?"
-
-"The wedding, sir?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"As soon as you and Mr. Rockwell can spare me, sir."
-
-Simpson closed the hand bag, closed the suit case and strapped it.
-
-"Is there anything else I can do, sir?"
-
-"I believe not."
-
-The waiter hesitated. Then he decided to speak what was in his heart:
-
-"I am very greatly indebted to you, sir," he said, with an admirable
-combination of dignity and feeling. "You have made a happy man of a
-very wretched one and have--saved a young girl who was on a very wrong
-track. If ever I can render you any service, you can always command me,
-sir."
-
-Merriam sprang up and advanced, holding out his hand.
-
-"I'm tremendously glad," he said. "I have accomplished one thing anyway
-with all this miserable imposture."
-
-Simpson shook his hand heartily. Then:
-
-"Shall I leave you now, sir?"
-
-"Why, yes, please," said Merriam. He was loth, to be left alone, but
-there was clearly nothing more to be said between him and Simpson.
-
-In a moment the waiter had withdrawn through the door into the Senator's
-bedroom. Merriam's thoughts followed him into that room, where Mollie
-June doubtless still sat by her husband's bed.
-
-But just then a knock sounded at the hall door. He looked up startled.
-He was not expecting any one to approach from that direction. Who could
-have any business with "Mr. Wilson"?
-
-Another knock. Merriam hesitated. Should he go to the door, or simply
-sit tight till the knocker became convinced that there was no one within
-and went away? He decided upon the latter course. Any one whom he ought
-to see Rockwell would bring to him.
-
-A third time the knock sounded, discreet but persistent. Then suddenly
-a key was inserted in the lock and turned, the door opened, and in
-stepped--Crockett!
-
-Merriam sprang to his feet but did not speak.
-
-"Thank you," said Crockett over his shoulder--to whom Merriam could not
-see.
-
-He closed the door and advanced:
-
-"Is it Mr. Wilson?" he asked ironically, "or Mr. Merriam--or Senator
-Norman?"
-
-"Is it Mr. Crockett, the financier, or a house-breaker?" Merriam
-retorted.
-
-Mr. Crockett laughed, but it was an unpleasant, forced laugh.
-
-"Since you do not answer my question," he said, "I don't see that I need
-answer yours. See here," he continued, with a change of tone, "how much
-is it worth to you to turn over to me those pictures you took last
-night--films and all, of course--and get out of this?"
-
-"You won't accomplish anything by insulting me!" cried Merriam, a flare
-of youthful anger somewhat impairing his dignity.
-
-"Insulting you!" echoed Crockett sneeringly. "My dear sir, as a complete
-impostor you can hardly expect to get away with that pose. I'll admit
-you're good at it. That impersonation of the Senator before the Urban
-Club this noon was a masterpiece. But what's the game? Does Rockwell
-really suppose he can swing Senator Norman over permanently to the
-so-called Reformers? Let me tell you that as soon as the real Norman is
-on his feet again Thompson and I and the rest of us will get hold of him
-and bring him around in no time. We know too many things about your
-handsome Boy Senator. He can't shake us now. So what's the use?
-Unless," he added suddenly, "the plan is to kill him off and substitute
-you permanently!"
-
-"Hardly so desperate as that," said Merriam, smiling. The other man's
-long speech had given him time to recover himself.
-
-"Well, then, why not make a good thing out of it for yourself and get
-away while you can? It isn't as if no one had suspected you. _I_ not
-only suspect but know. I haven't told any one else yet, but you can
-hardly expect me to keep your secret indefinitely."
-
-"You forget the pictures," said Merriam, as sweetly as he could.
-
-Crockett obviously mastered a "damn" and chased the expression that rose
-to accompany it from his face.
-
-"Let's keep to business," he said. "How much is Rockwell paying you for
-this job?"
-
-"No monetary consideration has been mentioned between us," said Merriam.
-It was the truth, of course, but perhaps he need not have been so
-stilted about it.
-
-"You surely don't expect me to believe that. Come! Whatever the amount
-is, I'll double it. All I ask of you is, first, to hand over to me the
-pictures, and, second, to pick up your bags, which I see are already
-packed, and walk out of that door with me. We'll step across the street
-to my bank, I'll pay you the sum in cash, and you can skidoo. No
-exposure is involved, you see--of you or your friends. I'm not
-revengeful. I don't need to be. All I have to do is to wait until I can
-get hold of Norman. In the meantime you get clear of a situation that
-otherwise is likely to prove very nasty for you personally and very
-nasty likewise for your Reformer associates. You will note that I trust
-to your honour to give me all the copies of the pictures and not to
-sting me on the amount I am to pay you."
-
-"Honour among thieves?" queried Merriam.
-
-"Who's insulting now?" Crockett demanded.
-
-"I am," said Merriam. "At least, I'm trying my best to be. Mr.
-Crockett, you spoke of walking out of that door. I'll thank you to do
-that very thing--at once! If you don't, I'll call in Mr. Rockwell, and
-we'll put you out. I'm tempted to try it by myself, but I don't care to
-risk any noisy scuffling."
-
-"Prudent young man!" sneered Crockett, retreating nevertheless in the
-direction of the hall door. "I understand that you reject my offer?"
-
-"I certainly do."
-
-"Very good. I hereby serve notice on you that I shall immediately
-expose the whole of your atrocious masquerade! It will be the ruin of
-you and Rockwell and Norman and Mayor Black and every other person who
-has been mixed up in it. Oh, you'll be a nine days' wonder in the city,
-but no one of you will ever have a scrap of public credit again!"
-
-"And on the following day," retorted Merriam, "those pretty pictures we
-know of will be published in _Tidbits_. They'll be running sketches
-called 'A Financier in a Flat' in every music hall in town."
-
-"You blackmailer!"
-
-"On the contrary you've tried to get me to take blackmail and I've
-refused it."
-
-With a sound remarkably like the snarling "bah" which regularly
-accompanies the retreat of the foiled villain of melodrama, Crockett
-turned towards the door through which he had been invited to depart.
-But in the course of the three or four steps which he had to take to
-reach, that exit he recovered something of his dignity and finesse.
-
-Having opened the door, he turned and bowed ironically.
-
-"Good evening, Senator," he said. "I'm afraid I shall be prevented from
-keeping my appointment with you at eight. If you should change your
-mind within the next half hour, you can reach me by 'phone at the Union
-League. Otherwise, look out!"
-
-On this warning note he closed the door behind him.
-
-Merriam found himself with a whirling brain. As a quiet pedagogue he was
-not accustomed to scenes of battle such as he had just passed through.
-He walked up and down and mechanically lit a cigarette.
-
-As he did so, his mind seized upon one question. Who had unlocked the
-door for Crockett? Some chambermaid or bell boy? Or the floor clerk?
-At any rate it must have been done with her connivance and by her
-authority, for she was the commanding general of Floor Three. Why had
-she done or permitted this outrageous thing? Suddenly Merriam recalled
-her studied ignoring of him on the last two occasions of his passing her
-desk, and compared it with her whispered "The violets are lovely" when
-he first asked for Senator Norman's key. There had been something
-between her and Norman. He, Merriam, in taking on the Senator's role
-had dropped out that part of it, and she was offended. How seriously he
-could not tell.
-
-He concluded that he must attempt to reinstate himself--Norman--in the
-pretty floor clerk's good graces, and rather hastily decided upon a
-plan, He went to the telephone and asked for the hotel florist. How
-much were violets? Well, they had some lovely large bunches for five
-dollars. This figure rather staggered the rural pedagogue, but he
-promptly asked to have one of those bunches sent up at once to "Mr.
-Wilson," giving his room number, 325. He would present his peace
-offering in person. "I am sure these flowers will look lovely on your
-desk--or if you will wear them at your waist?" he would say, or
-something of the sort. This was probably not the way Senator Norman
-would have done--he would have run no such open risk,--but we must make
-allowances for Merriam's inexperience.
-
-But he never carried out his ill-conceived plan. For he had barely left
-the telephone when he was arrested by a light knock on the door leading
-into the Senator's bedroom. This time he was sure it was Mollie June,
-and he was right.
-
-When he opened the door she stood there with a finger at her lips.
-
-"Aunt Mary has taken my place with George," she said in a low tone.
-"She says I may give you some tea. It will be late before you can get
-your dinner on the train. Would you like it?"
-
-"Tremendously," said Merriam sincerely.
-
-"Come into the sitting room, then."
-
-She crossed the sick room to the door at the other side which led to the
-sitting room, and he followed, with a nod to Aunt Mary, who now sat by
-the sleeping Senator's bed.
-
-Arrived in the sitting room, he was further delighted to find that
-neither Rockwell nor Simpson was present. It was to be a genuine
-tete-a-tete. By one of the windows stood a small table with the tea
-things upon it, the kettle already singing over an alcohol flame.
-Beside the table stood a large armchair and a small rocker.
-
-"The big chair is for you," said Mollie June, seating herself in the
-rocker and adjusting the flame.
-
-"Thank you," he said and sat. Then a mingling of pleasure and
-embarrassment held him awkwardly silent.
-
-Mollie June was apparently quite composed.
-
-"George is ever so much better," she said. "He was awake a few minutes
-ago, and he seemed almost well. He has only a very little fever left."
-
-She smiled brightly at Merriam, who dimly realised that it was to the
-fact that her mind was now at ease about her husband that he owed this
-treat.
-
-Mollie June set a brightly flowered cup on a saucer to match and placed
-a small spoon beside it. Then she took up the sugar tongs, and her hand
-hovered over the bowl.
-
-"One lump or two?"
-
-"Two, please," said Merriam, noting the slenderness and whiteness of the
-fingers that held the tongs and the pinkness of the small nails. (Why
-else except to display charming fingers and nails were sugar tongs
-invented?)
-
-"Lemon or cream?"
-
-Merriam was sophisticated enough to know that the right answer was
-"Lemon," but he preferred cream, and an admirable instinct of honesty
-led him to say so.
-
-Through the open window came the pleasant air of the spring afternoon.
-The canyon-like street without, being an east-and-west street, was
-flooded with sunlight. With the breeze there entered also the
-stimulating roar of the city's lively traffic. The breeze stirred
-Mollie June's soft wavy hair. It also caused the alcohol flame under
-the brass kettle to flutter and sputter, and Mollie June leaned forward
-to regulate it. The youthful firmness of her cheeks and chin showed
-like a lovely cameo in the bright light, which would have been unkind to
-an older face. Having adjusted the flame, she suddenly looked up at
-Merriam and smiled.
-
-"Mollie June," he cried, "there is nothing lovelier in the world than
-your eyes when you look up and smile like that!"
-
-He had not meant to say anything of that sort, but it was forced out of
-him.
-
-Mollie June's smile lingered, and the cameo became faintly, charmingly
-tinted. But she evidently felt that some rebuke was needed.
-
-"_Mrs._ Mollie June, you must remember," she said gently.
-
-Then, taking up her cup and leaning back in her small rocker, she asked:
-
-"How did you get along with the speeches?"
-
-"Not very well," said Merriam. He hesitated in his mind whether to tell
-her of Crockett's interruption but decided not to. It would take too
-long--he could not waste the precious minutes so. "I'll have the dickens
-of a time with them," he added.
-
-"Oh, no, you won't!" she cried, as if shocked at the idea. "You were
-wonderful this noon. I was so proud of you."
-
-"You had a right to be," said Merriam. "It was because you were there
-that I could do well." Which was perhaps partially true.
-
-"Why don't you go into it yourself?" asked Mollie June.
-
-"Public life? Perhaps I will. I may go back to the University for a
-law course and then try to get into politics."
-
-This plan had just occurred to Merriam, but he did not disclose that
-fact. In uttering one's inspirations to a pretty woman one usually
-presents them as though they were the fruit of mature consideration.
-
-"That would be fine," said Mollie June without much enthusiasm. "But
-you'll be at Riceville next year?"
-
-"I suppose so. I'll have to save up a bit more."
-
-"I may be at home for Christmas," she said. "I'll see you then."
-
-Merriam considered this painfully.
-
-"No," he said at last slowly. "I shan't be there. I shall be away for
-the holidays."
-
-"You could stay over," said Mollie June, wonderingly reproachful.
-
-"I suppose I could. But I mustn't. Just to see you--publicly, is too
-hard on me. And if I see you alone like this,--I say things I oughtn't
-to--make love to you."
-
-Mollie June sat drooping, with downcast eyes, her cup in her lap.
-
-Suddenly he was on his knees beside her. He put his arms about her, to
-the great peril of flowered china.
-
-"Mollie June!" he whispered. He softly kissed her cheek.
-
-She raised her eyes and looked deep into his.
-
-"John!" she whispered back, though she seemed to struggle not to do so.
-
-After a moment he smiled sadly and got to his feet.
-
-"I mustn't have any more tea," he said, as if that beverage was too
-intoxicating, as indeed under the circumstances it was.
-
-Fortunately--since of all things what they needed was a
-diversion,--Merriam at that moment became conscious of a portentous
-knocking on a distant door. He realised that it was on the door to "Mr.
-Wilson's" room and remembered. The flowers--for the floor clerk!
-
-He hurried to the hall and called the boy from the second door down the
-corridor, where he was about to pound again.
-
-In a moment he reentered the room, bearing a lovely great bunch of
-fragrant English violets--and thinking hard. But he was equal to the
-emergency.
-
-He advanced to Mollie June, who stood now with her back to the window,
-her slender form outlined against the light, her face in shadow.
-
-"I've never given you anything, Mollie June," he said. "These are for
-you--and the sick room." He held them for her to smell.
-
-She took them from him, barely touching his hand as she did so, and
-buried her face in them for a long minute. Then she raised her eyes to
-him over them.
-
-"Thank you, Mr. John," she said with a sad smile.
-
-And just then Aunt Mary entered from the Senator's bedroom.
-
-"See what Mr. Merriam has ordered for George!" said Mollie June. "Isn't
-he thoughtful?"
-
-"Very," said Aunt Mary, in her customary dry tone.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XXVII*
-
- *THE CODE TELEGRAM*
-
-
-Rockwell had returned with Alicia. He briskly declared that it was time
-to start for the train. Mayor Black, it appeared, was below in his car
-and was going to the station with them.
-
-"I've told Simpson to take your bags down. Except the portfolio. You'd
-better keep that in your own hands. What progress with the speeches?"
-
-"Not much," said Merriam. "But I shall have the whole evening on the
-train. I'll get them."
-
-He crossed the sick room, where Dr. Hobart was now bending over the
-Senator, apparently making an examination. He thrust the pile of
-manuscripts back into the portfolio. Then, after a glance about the
-room, reminiscent of his burglarious entry the night before, he caught
-up his coat and hat and returned to the sitting room again.
-
-"Are we ready?" he asked of Rockwell.
-
-"Waiting for Hobart--for a final report on the Senator's condition."
-
-"Aren't you coming to the station with us, Mollie June?" Alicia was
-saying.
-
-"No," said Mollie June, her eyes on a large bunch of violets which she
-was arranging in a bowl. "I must stay with my husband."
-
-"But Aunt Mary will be here. I think she owes it to you to come with
-us, don't you, Mr. Merriam?"
-
-"No," said Merriam, "I think she is right in staying."
-
-Alicia looked from him to Mollie June, then shrugged her shoulders and
-turned to Rockwell, who was cautioning Aunt Mary--as if Aunt Mary ever
-needed cautioning!--about maintaining the closest possible guard on the
-Senator's rooms in their absence.
-
-Merriam moved to Mollie June's side.
-
-"I shan't see you again," he said.
-
-"No," said Mollie June.
-
-For a single moment she looked up from the flowers into his face. Her
-eyes held tears, and she blushed slightly. In her look he read
-unwilling love and shame.
-
-He would have moved away, impotently miserable, but her hand, which had
-dropped to her side between them, suddenly touched his, closed in his
-for an instant, and was withdrawn, leaving something--something very
-small, cool, and fragile--a single violet.
-
-He understood, of course, that it was to be his souvenir of her, all he
-could have of her, through the long years to come while she played out
-her loathsome role as the wife of the dissipated Boy Senator and he
-taught school at Riceville or--what did it matter what he did?
-
-His hand closed quickly on the violet, and he turned to face Dr. Hobart,
-who was just entering from the sick room.
-
-The physician was highly reassuring. The Senator was doing very well
-indeed.
-
-"He'll be able to meet us in Springfield, then, to-morrow night?"
-demanded Rockwell.
-
-"I think he'll be well enough to do that," returned Hobart, with a
-slight evasiveness which Rockwell and Merriam had occasion a few hours
-later to recall with some vividness. But at the moment they scarcely
-noticed it.
-
-"Good!" cried Rockwell. "We're off. No! Wait."
-
-He drew a folded paper from his pocket and handed it to Aunt Mary.
-
-"This paper describes a simple form of code telegram. Use it in your
-messages to us in regard to the Senator's progress and when and where he
-is to join us. You'll wire at least once a day, of course."
-
-"Yes," said Aunt Mary, accepting the paper.
-
-Merriam shook hands with Aunt Mary.
-
-"I hope," she said, "that some day, after all this is over, we may be
-able to have you visit us, when George can thank you for the inestimable
-service you have rendered him."
-
-"I should be delighted," Merriam murmured, though he had no great mind
-to be thanked by George Norman.
-
-Then he shook hands with Mollie June and met her eyes for a moment, but,
-under the gaze of Aunt Mary and Rockwell and Alicia, "Good-bye," was all
-he could say.
-
-"Good-bye. Thank you for--everything," she replied, and her eyes
-followed his figure as Rockwell swept him from the room.
-
-The closing of the door of the Senator's sitting room upon Merriam
-marked the beginning of a period of a dozen hours or more that was
-utterly phantasmal and unreal to him both at the time and in his
-recollection afterwards. He seemed to move and speak and act without
-volition and without any clear realisation of what he was doing or why
-he was doing it.
-
-After dinner with Rockwell and Mr. Wayward--an excellent meal served in
-the private car by an amiable gentleman of colour, Merriam read the
-speech which he was to deliver at Cairo in the morning, and then had to
-pull himself together and commit that speech, but he did even this
-mechanically. And finally to bed in his compartment, at first to a long,
-uneasy dream, in which he appeared to be making an interminable speech
-to an audience consisting of Mollie June, Jennie, an inattentive floor
-clerk, Aunt Mary, and Simpson, and then to a heavy slumber, from which
-he was roused with difficulty the next morning.
-
-In the morning it was the same way with him--everything dully unreal.
-Breakfast. Going over the speech again. Then it was nine o'clock, and
-the train was running into Cairo. A crowd at the station. A cheer or
-two. He was being assisted into an automobile. A sort of procession
-with a band through several blocks of streets to a small park.
-
-Merriam found himself sitting with Rockwell and Mr. Wayward and several
-local notables in a band stand, with a considerable concourse of people
-sitting and standing about on the grass below. Some native orator made a
-short speech. A number by the band. Then the Mayor of Cairo was
-effusively introducing Senator Norman. The Mayor sat down amid
-applause.
-
-Merriam rose, advanced to the rail, and began on his speech. He felt
-himself to be a sort of animated phonograph. The words which he had
-learned the night before and reviewed that morning ran trippingly off
-his tongue. His collegiate training and subsequent experience in public
-speaking came to the aid of his subconscious self, which seemed to be
-functioning with practically no direction from his higher centers. He
-turned pleasantly as he spoke to face now one part of his circle of
-auditors and now another. He suited his tone to the words in different
-parts of the speech. He even achieved an occasional appropriate
-gesture.
-
-At last he came to the end of what he had learned and stopped as the
-phonograph stops when the end of a record is reached. And for a moment
-he stood there by the rail, blank, at a loss--as a phonograph would have
-stood. He had to rouse himself with a jerk of conscious attention
-before he perceived that what he had to do next was to step back and sit
-down.
-
-The applause was fairly satisfactory. The Mayor of Cairo leaned across
-Rockwell to shake hands and congratulate him, and Mr. Wayward, on the
-other side, patted his shoulder and said, "Good enough!" And the band
-struck into a patriotic air.
-
-Merriam awoke. It was as if lights had been turned on and doors opened.
-He realised that it was a bright, sunny morning, that a band was
-playing, that he, John Merriam, was alive and young, and that he was
-having a whimsically glorious adventure which he could not afford to
-miss the joy of even if Mollie June was Senator Norman's wife.
-
-In this rejuvenated mood he joyously descended with the others from the
-band stand and climbed into the automobile and lay back happily, between
-Rockwell and the Cairo Mayor, to relish the slow processional
-drive--still preceded by the band--back to the station.
-
-"Feeling better?" asked Rockwell, who had not failed to note his
-previous lethargy.
-
-"Feeling fine!" he replied, and gave his attention to the scenery of
-Cairo's Main Street and the crowds therein, waiting eagerly for a
-glimpse of the remarkable Boy Senator.
-
-As the automobile passed close to the curb on turning a corner, Merriam
-caught one remark:
-
-"He does look just like a young man!"
-
-The speaker was a decidedly pretty girl in a boldish sort of way.
-Merriam sensed and seized upon the privileges of age. He leaned
-forward:
-
-"Thank you, my dear," he said. "At least I'm young enough to know a
-pretty girl when I see one."
-
-Which incident will serve to show that Merriam was really awake again.
-Also, it probably won more votes for Senator Norman's party at the next
-election than the whole of Aunt Mary's able speech as delivered by the
-human phonograph a few minutes earlier.
-
-They reached the station and regained the private car. Merriam sank
-into a wonderful armchair in the sitting room compartment, glanced about
-him at the luxurious appointments, and lit a cigarette with gusto.
-
-"I shouldn't mind this riches-and-fame business for quite a while," he
-thought. (Mollie June was for the time forgotten; thus it is with the
-fickle male.)
-
-Rockwell had sat down in the next chair. Merriam made an effort of
-memory.
-
-"East St. Louis next?" he asked.
-
-"Yes," said Rockwell. "We'll have to get at the speech as soon as the
-train starts."
-
-Just then a small but vociferous urchin appeared in the door of the car.
-His cap proclaimed him a telegraph messenger.
-
-"Telegram for Mr. Rockwell!" he shouted, as though Mr. Rockwell were
-probably in the next county.
-
-Rockwell signed the book, and the lad slowly withdrew himself, taking
-generous eyefuls of Rockwell, "Senator Norman," and the private car. As
-he lingered with a last backward stare in the doorway, Merriam winked at
-him, and the boy grinned and generously, democratically winked back.
-
-Turning from that wink to Rockwell, Merriam was startled. The man sat
-limp with the telegram on his knee and a pencil in his hand. I will not
-say he was pale, but certainly he was haggard.
-
-He handed the telegram to Merriam.
-
-Merriam tried to read it, but could make no sense at all. It was very
-long but apparently a mere string of words with little intelligible
-meaning.
-
-"What----?" he began.
-
-"It's code," said Rockwell. "I've underlined the words that count."
-
-Picking out the significant words by means of Rockwell's underlining,
-Merriam read:
-
-
-George kidnapped from rooms whereabouts unknown doctor disappeared
-cancel trip return Mary.
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XXVIII*
-
- *SIMPSON AS DETECTIVE*
-
-
-A moment later Mr. Wayward, who had stopped at the station cigar stand
-to replenish his stock of nicotine, rejoined them and was shown the
-telegram.
-
-His first comment was profane.
-
-"We've got to go back," said Rockwell. "Now that they have Norman in
-their power--for Crockett is behind this, of course,--they may denounce
-us--may make Norman himself denounce us--any minute. They have no end
-of a grip on him, and he has no great love for the role of Reformer
-himself--nor for me. Our only hope is to get back to Chicago and find
-him and get hold of him again." He jumped to his feet, "I must see the
-station master at once."
-
-"Yes," said Mr. Wayward, "there's nothing else for it."
-
-Rockwell hastily departed to announce their changed plans to the station
-master, and Merriam and Mr. Wayward looked at each other. The latter's
-face had assumed the humorous smile which had been his expression
-towards the whole affair from the beginning.
-
-"It's been a damn fool business all along," he said.
-
-"I suppose it has," said Merriam.
-
-"Good fun for you, though." Mr. Wayward lit a cigar.
-
-"Yes," Merriam assented. But he was thinking of something else. Back
-to Chicago! The young rascal was realising that that meant he should
-see Mollie June again.
-
-Mr. Wayward puffed meditatively.
-
-"'Doctor disappeared,'" he quoted from the telegram. "That means Hobart
-was in it. Probably he was the chief agent. Crockett's bribed him."
-
-Merriam suddenly remembered the tableau which Rockwell and he had
-surprised as they stepped out of the elevator at the Hotel De Soto on
-the previous afternoon: Dr. Hobart in confidential conference with the
-floor clerk.
-
-"Probably they bribed the floor clerk, too," he said. "Hobart seemed to
-be sweet on her."
-
-"So?" said Mr. Wayward. And after a minutes consideration: "Very
-likely. They could hardly have managed without the floor clerk in
-fact."
-
-Presently he added:
-
-"We've got to go back all right. But I don't what we can do except to
-surrender."
-
-"We still have my pictures of Crockett at Jennie's."
-
-"Well, I hope so. Unless they've bribed Simpson, too. Those pictures
-are one of the things that may make them give us a chance to surrender."
-
-The two men smoked in silence for several minutes--until Rockwell
-returned.
-
-"Well, that's fixed," he announced. "There's a north-bound express due
-in half an hour and reported on time that will take us into Chicago by
-nine o'clock to-night. You're sick, of course, Senator," he added to
-Merriam. "Bronchitis again!"
-
-They continued to talk until the north-bound train arrived and picked up
-their car, and they were started on their return trip.
-
-At Carbondale Rockwell sent off telegrams to the several cities which
-Merriam was to have visited, cancelling Senator Norman's speaking tour
-on account of a renewed attack of bronchitis. He also sent a message in
-code to Aunt Mary, giving the hour when they were due to arrive.
-
-The three men talked, of course, but they had so few facts to go on that
-they could only formulate gloomy speculations, with nothing really in
-the way of definite conclusion beyond what Mr. Wayward and Merriam had
-reached in their first few minutes of chat immediately after the arrival
-of Aunt Mary's message. How the kidnapping had been managed or where
-Norman might be, they simply could not tell.
-
-They had one practical point to decide, namely, their first procedure on
-reaching the city. It was obviously not safe for "Senator Norman" to go
-directly to the Hotel De Soto. They could not tell what the situation
-there might be since the kidnapping. It was finally agreed that
-Rockwell and Merriam should leave the train at Fifty-Third Street and
-take a taxicab to Rockwell's bachelor apartment on Drexel Boulevard,
-while Mr. Wayward should go on to the Twelfth Street Station and thence
-to the hotel to see Aunt Mary. Their next step was to depend on what he
-learned there. Rockwell was afraid even to telephone from his apartment,
-for fear the wire to the Senator's suite might be tapped. Merriam was
-not keen on this arrangement because it evidently postponed his seeing
-Mollie June and might even prevent his doing so altogether. But this
-was not an objection which he could raise in the discussion.
-
-At last they were running into the City. Fifty-Third Street was
-reached, and Rockwell and Merriam shook hands with Mr. Wayward and
-descended from the private car.
-
-Rockwell's first act in the station was to buy an evening paper. He
-scanned the sheet anxiously, with Merriam looking over his shoulder.
-The first page carried a paragraph reporting the abandonment of Senator
-Norman's down-State speaking tour "on account of a return of his
-bronchitis." Rockwell had sent no word to this effect to any one in
-Chicago, but evidently the news had come in from some one or more of the
-towns to which he had wired cancellations. There were, however, no
-headlines in regard to the kidnapping of a United States Senator from
-one of the city's leading hotels and no expose of their imposture.
-
-"They're still keeping it dark," said Rockwell, with a flash of renewed
-hope on his haggard face. "We're going to have a chance to make terms."
-
-A moment later they were in a taxicab bound for his apartment. They
-rode in silence. Merriam wondered if he should see Mollie June
-again--though just what good that would do him or what he should say to
-her he could not have told.
-
-"I shall see her once--alone," he said to himself, "whatever happens.
-I've done enough for them to have a right to demand that."
-
-And on that scene of unhappy farewell--for what else could it be?--his
-thoughts halted. His mind would go no farther.
-
-The taxicab stopped, and they got out, and Merriam found himself in
-front of a decidedly imposing apartment building. Rockwell hurried him
-through a sumptuous entry and into an elevator. They shot up three
-flights. Then in a hallway Rockwell unlocked a door, and they entered
-the sitting room of his apartment--a large room in quiet tones,
-furnished somewhat in the taste of a good men's club.
-
-Merriam sank into a chair.
-
-"Played out?" asked Rockwell, standing over him and speaking in his old
-manner of matter-of-fact good humour, which had deserted him during that
-trying day.
-
-"Yes," said Merriam. He felt, in fact, quite exhausted, although he had
-done nothing since ten o'clock that morning except smoke and eat two
-meals and wait.
-
-"So am I," said Rockwell, "and we must get fit again. We may have a
-busy night ahead. Suppose we have a shower and then coffee? That'll
-brace us up."
-
-Three quarters of an hour later, the two men, much refreshed by the
-shock of cold water and the odd stimulation which always follows
-re-dressing in fresh clothes, were sitting on opposite sides of
-Rockwell's writing table, waiting for an electric percolator to "perk,"
-when the doorbell rang. They looked at each other.
-
-"Curtain up for the last act," said Rockwell as he went to answer it.
-
-It was Mr. Wayward with Aunt Mary and Father Murray and Mayor Black.
-Mollie June, Merriam saw, was not with them.
-
-"Come in," said Rockwell, oddly formal.
-
-Merriam, as he rose, noticed the change in Aunt Mary. Always before she
-had seemed a creature of no age at all; now she was obviously a quite
-elderly woman. The Mayor's plump face was gray and drawn with anxiety.
-Even Mr. Wayward looked more worried than he had seemed all day.
-
-For a moment the four of them stood together just inside the room,
-staring at Merriam, accusingly as it were, as if he had been the cause
-of their trouble.
-
-But Rockwell, having closed the door, turned and after one glance at the
-group spoke loudly, with exaggerated briskness:
-
-"Sit down, all of you--and tell me. You'll find this a comfortable
-chair, Aunt Mary. Over there, Mayor. You're at home here, Wayward."
-
-Father Murray took Aunt Mary's arm and led her to the chair Rockwell had
-indicated. Solemnly they all sat down.
-
-Rockwell was both daunted and impatient. After another look at Aunt
-Mary, he turned to the Mayor:
-
-"When did it happen?"
-
-But before the Mayor could reply, Aunt Mary spoke up. She was not so
-far gone as she looked.
-
-"Between five minutes after eight and half past nine this morning," she
-said. "Mollie June and I had gone downstairs for breakfast in the
-Wedgewood Room and then for a short walk--over to Michigan Avenue and
-back. Dr. Hobart suggested both. He said we ought to get out that much
-before we settled down for the day in the rooms, and that he would stay
-with George till we returned. He said that George was much better, and
-he looked better. When we got back--it was exactly half past
-nine,--both he and George were gone."
-
-Aunt Mary paused for an instant on this disastrous climax.
-
-"We were terribly upset," she continued. "We could hardly believe our
-senses. Mollie June cried, and at first I could not think what I ought
-to do. But presently I had mind enough to telephone for Mayor Black and
-Father Murray, and by the time they came I was calm enough to think
-quietly and join them in making plans."
-
-"You were wonderful," said Father Murray.
-
-"We could make no kind of announcement or complaint. George was not
-supposed to be there. You"--she looked at Merriam---"were probably at
-that very moment making a speech in his name at Cairo. We could say
-nothing to anybody. We figured out that you were either still at Cairo
-or on your way to East St. Louis, and we sent messages to Mr. Rockwell
-at both places. We had to stop that insane speaking tour and get you
-both back here as soon as possible. We telephoned to the hotel office
-for Dr. Hobart, but they said he had resigned as house physician the
-night before. Then we sent for Simpson. He didn't seem greatly
-surprised. In fact, he said that Dr. Hobart had offered him money early
-that morning 'to help in restoring Senator Norman to his real friends.'
-That seems to have been the way Hobart put it. Simpson refused the
-money, he said, and didn't learn what the plan was. He said that he had
-meant to tell me of the offer but hadn't been able to get away from his
-work. It was still only a couple of hours since Dr. Hobart had talked
-with him. He said he would try to find Hobart and learn where George
-was, and then he went away, and we haven't heard from him since.
-Finally, I went out to see the floor clerk, thinking she must have seen
-when George was taken out, but there was a new girl. The former one had
-quit, she said, at nine o'clock--simply telephoned the office that she
-was leaving and hung up and slipped away."
-
-"Have you tried to see Crockett?" Rockwell asked.
-
-"I have," said the Mayor. "Been trying all day. But both at his office
-and at his house they say he isn't in and they don't know where he is or
-when he will be back. And he wasn't at any of his clubs."
-
-"It's a pretty clean get-away," said Rockwell.
-
-Merriam spoke up. "I have some hopes of Simpson," he said. "His
-continued absence may mean that he is following some sort of trail."
-
-"Maybe," said Rockwell. "Meanwhile this coffee"--he drew attention to
-the percolator--"is getting pretty black, and black coffee is what we
-all need. After that we'll see."
-
-"Where is Mrs. Norman?" Merriam asked timidly while Rockwell was pouring
-and passing the coffee.
-
-"We left her at the hotel with Alicia," said Mr. Wayward. "We had to
-leave some one there, in case some message should come from Simpson or
-from Crockett or from George himself."
-
-The coffee was drunk in a dismal silence. Mr. Wayward attempted one or
-two semi-cheerful remarks, but they fell flat.
-
-"The first question," said Rockwell when the cups had been emptied, "is:
-where is George Norman? Crockett may have taken him to his own house.
-But that is unlikely. Or to some other hotel. Or to one of his clubs.
-Or, if he is still really sick, to a hospital. I think myself a hotel
-is the most probable. That could have been managed with a minimum of
-explanations. In any case we have got to find him. But this is no case
-for amateurs. I propose to engage a professional private detective and
-commission him to find George. Also Hobart. It oughtn't to take him
-more than twenty-four hours. Then we can make further plans. If Norman
-is still sick, we may have to re-kidnap him. If he is up and himself
-again, it will be a matter of parleying with him and Crockett and making
-such terms as we can. Has any one a better suggestion?"
-
-It appeared that no one had, and Rockwell was looking up the detective
-agency, when the doorbell rang again.
-
-Father Murray sprang to his feet.
-
-"Yes, you answer it," said Rockwell.
-
-Before the priest could reach the door an impatient rat-a-tat-tat
-sounded on the panel.
-
-He opened to Alicia and Simpson.
-
-"Good heavens, you're slow!" cried Alicia. "And glum as the grave," she
-added, glancing about the circle of faces. "Simpson has found George."
-
-There were exclamations.
-
-Rockwell put down the telephone book and went to Alicia.
-
-"Dear!" he said.
-
-And Alicia, turning, put her arms about his neck and kissed him. "You
-poor fellow!" she cried.
-
-Then Rockwell turned to Simpson.
-
-"Sit down here, Simpson," he said. "Have some coffee? You look
-fagged."
-
-"Thank you, sir. I _am_ pretty much all in."
-
-Rockwell drew a cup of coffee and took it to him, and the waiter gulped
-it down.
-
-"Thank you, sir," he said again. "Now I can tell you. I owe a good
-deal to that young gentleman"--he indicated Merriam,--"and when I saw
-the trouble you were all in I decided to do what I could. Of course we
-knew Mr. Crockett was at the bottom of the thing, and I decided he was
-the most findable person in it. I figured that he wouldn't appear at
-his office and wouldn't go home, but that sooner or later he would show
-up at one of his clubs. You remember I asked you this morning what
-clubs he belonged to." This to Mayor Black.
-
-The Mayor assented.
-
-"You mentioned five. That was a pretty large order, but I got some of
-my pals who are taxicab drivers to help me, and between us we kept a
-pretty close watch on all of them. He didn't come near the one I was
-watching myself, and I didn't hear anything from the others till five
-o'clock. Then one of the boys sent word to me that he had entered the
-Grill Club on Monroe Street. I went right over and hung around there
-for nearly three hours. It was a quarter to eight when he came out. He
-took a taxi, and I followed in another. He drove to St. John's Hospital
-over on the West Side. I was right after him and followed him into the
-building. He doesn't know me, of course, and paid no attention to me.
-He spoke to the nurse at the desk and then stepped into a waiting room.
-The nurse looked hard at me, but I said, 'I'm with him,' and stepped
-back towards the door. She thought I was his man and took no further
-notice of me. Pretty soon Dr. Hobart came down. He didn't see me, but
-I saw him plainly. He looked pretty much worried--scared, I thought.
-He and Mr. Crockett talked for a while in the waiting room, but I
-couldn't hear anything they said. Then Mr. Crockett left, and Dr.
-Hobart went back upstairs. I could have spoken to him after Mr. Crockett
-had gone out, but I thought I had better not let them know that any one
-was on their trail--for fear they would move him again. Then I had an
-idea. I went up to the desk again. I said to the nurse: 'How is Mr.
-Merriam?' She looked at me. 'He's pretty sick,' she said, and turned
-away. I didn't see what more I could do, so I took my taxi back to the
-De Soto and went up to the Senator's suite and found Miss Wayward and
-Mrs. Norman, and Miss Wayward brought me here."
-
-For a moment Rockwell seemed sunk in thought. Then he roused himself,
-glanced around the circle of faces, and spoke:
-
-"First of all, Mr. Simpson, I want to say that you have done a very
-clever bit of work. We were about to engage a private detective to
-undertake what you have already accomplished. I think I can safely say
-that we will see that you are suitably rewarded."
-
-"You can," said Mr. Wayward emphatically--which was satisfactory since
-he was the person present from whom any substantial monetary reward must
-come.
-
-"Thank you, sir," said Simpson.
-
-The Mayor broke in:
-
-"It's pretty clear what has happened. They got Norman downstairs while
-Miss Norman and Mrs. Norman were at breakfast, put him in a taxi, drove
-to the hospital, and entered him under the name of Merriam. And Dr.
-Hobart has stayed in attendance."
-
-"And he's still sick--perhaps worse," said Aunt Mary anxiously.
-
-"Why did they enter him as Merriam?" asked Rockwell, thinking aloud.
-"It must mean that Crockett doesn't dare denounce us or doesn't wish to
-do so, that he means to make terms with us and preserve the secrecy of
-the whole affair. As I see it, there will have to be one more
-substitution"--he addressed the real owner of the name of Merriam,--"of
-you for Norman--at the hospital. You have reported yourself to your
-Riceville people as sick. Very well, you have gone to a hospital. From
-the hospital you return to your work. It will strengthen your alibi.
-And Norman will be restored to us--on Crockett's conditions, of course.
-But we shall escape the worst. We shall come off safe yet. But it must
-happen at once," he continued, with a note of new anxiety. "The whole
-State knows that Norman's speaking tour has been abandoned, that he came
-back to Chicago to-day, that he is in the City now. We must get hold of
-Crockett some way to-night. The final substitution must be made before
-morning."
-
-Mr. Wayward was looking at his watch. "It's eleven o'clock now," he
-said. "But you'd better try telephoning. His clubs, I think."
-
-"Yes," said Rockwell. "The Grill Club! That's where you found him,
-Simpson? He may have gone back there for the night. I'll try that
-first."
-
-He went quickly to the telephone.
-
-While Rockwell was looking up the number and the rest waiting in painful
-expectancy, the doorbell for the third time startled them.
-
-"I'll go, sir," said Simpson.
-
-In a moment he had opened the door.
-
-On the threshold stood Crockett--a pale, hesitant, almost seedy
-Crockett, very different from the serene, confident, well-groomed
-financier whom Merriam had first encountered forty-eight hours before at
-Jennie's.
-
-Rockwell dropped the book:
-
-"Come in, Mr. Crockett. I was just going to 'phone to you."
-
-Crockett advanced a couple of steps into the room. Then he stopped.
-There was something portentous in his air of mournful gravity. His eyes
-travelled from face to face. For a moment they rested on Merriam. Then
-they came to a full stop on Aunt Mary.
-
-The whole roomful remained silent, fascinated by his look, which seemed
-to speak, not of threat, which they might have expected, but of some
-disaster beyond threat.
-
-At last with an effort he turned his eyes from Aunt Mary to Rockwell.
-
-"I have to tell you," he said, "that George Norman is dead."
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XXIX*
-
- *THE FINAL DILEMMA*
-
-
-I do not suppose Mr. Crockett desired to be unnecessarily cruel.
-Doubtless he would have preferred to break his devastating news more
-gently. But he was himself in a state of nervous exhaustion from
-fatigue, worry, and perhaps remorse, and the circle of anxious faces had
-proved too much for his self-control.
-
-Realising too late the brutal bluntness of his announcement, he broke
-into a hurried flow of words:
-
-"We took him from the hotel this morning to St. John's Hospital. We
-thought he would be just as well off there--even better off. Dr. Hobart
-thought he was nearly well anyway. But the ride and the effort of
-listening to Hobart's explanations apparently fatigued him. By the time
-they got to the hospital he was very sick again. His bronchitis--if it
-ever was bronchitis--turned into pneumonia--double acute pneumonia. He
-got worse and worse all day. Dr. Hobart and the physicians and nurses
-at the hospital did everything possible for him. But it was no use. He
-died at nine o'clock."
-
-All eyes turned suddenly to Aunt Mary, who had risen, holding on to the
-back of her chair.
-
-Father Murray was at her side in an instant, and Alicia hurried to her.
-
-"No," said Aunt Mary, brokenly, "I'm not going--to faint--or anything.
-But I want--to be alone."
-
-Rockwell sprang to his feet. "My bedroom," he said, and led the way to
-the door of his chamber, which opened off the sitting room.
-
-In a moment Aunt Mary, walking between Father Murray and Alicia, had
-passed into the bedroom.
-
-Mr. Wayward's voice broke the stillness.
-
-"Poor fellow!" he said.
-
-For a minute or two they all paid the tribute of silence to the dead.
-But it was impossible to be really very sorry for George Norman. He had
-had an easy, pleasure-filled life--wealth, luxury, fame, and a good
-time, according to his own conception of a good time, up to the very
-beginning of his brief illness. That his last few, largely unconscious
-hours had been passed in a hospital away from his friends had certainly
-been almost no grief to him. The only sorrow genuinely possible was
-over the common folly, and the universal final tragedy, of humankind.
-In a few moments the thoughts of the entire group that remained in
-Rockwell's sitting room were irresistibly drawn back to the strange and
-somewhat dangerous situation in which the unexpected death had left
-them.
-
-Presently Rockwell spoke:
-
-"Technically, Mr. Crockett, I suppose it is not Senator Norman but Mr.
-Merriam who died at St. John's Hospital."
-
-(Merriam was somewhat startled at this turn of thought; this phase of
-the matter had not yet occurred to him.)
-
-"You have made no announcement?" Rockwell asked.
-
-"No," said Crockett. "I have done nothing. When Hobart telephoned me
-that--what had happened, I rushed out to the hospital again--I don't
-know why. I couldn't believe it. Then I telephoned from the hospital
-to the De Soto and got Mrs. Norman, and she told me you were all here,
-so I came here. I have done nothing."
-
-While he was speaking Alicia and Father Murray returned from the
-bedroom.
-
-"She is all right," said Alicia. "She asked us to leave her alone for a
-few minutes. Did you tell Mrs. Norman?" she added, addressing Crockett.
-
-"What had happened? Yes," said Crockett.
-
-Merriam's thoughts flew to Mollie June, alone in the vast, heartless
-hotel with the news of her husband's death.
-
-"Ought not some one to go to her?" he asked.
-
-"Presently," said Rockwell. "We must first consider the situation a
-little--hers as well as ours."
-
-Mayor Black spoke up:
-
-"It will be pretty awkward for her--aside from natural grief and all
-that--that her husband should have died in a hospital under another name
-without her being present, while the man to whom the other name belongs
-was impersonating him in public. And awkward for Miss Norman. For the
-rest of us, too. Damned awkward!"
-
-"It is a hard thing to have to close the career of George Norman with
-such a story," said Mr. Wayward.
-
-"It must never happen!" said a voice behind them.
-
-They all turned. Aunt Mary was standing in the door of the bedroom.
-She already looked more like herself. She was one of those souls who
-may sink under passive anxiety and suspense but find themselves again
-immediately when a call for action comes. She had scarcely been left
-alone, apparently, when the same thought which the Mayor and Mr. Wayward
-had expressed had occurred to her--the peril to the name of Norman,
-which was perhaps even more dear to her than her brother himself had
-been. And instantly, by some powerful effort of will, she had put grief
-behind her and turned to face this new danger.
-
-"It must never happen," she repeated, advancing into the room, where
-Alicia, and the men too, unmindful of the etiquette which should have
-brought them to their feet, sat staring at her. "The secret must be
-kept. It is more important now than ever. With George alive, it would
-not have mattered so much. He would have lived it down triumphantly.
-Only the rest of us would have suffered--not he, nor the Name. But
-now--_it must be kept_!"
-
-"But how _can_ it be kept?" said Crockett, in a tone of desperation.
-
-For a moment no one spoke.
-
-Then Rockwell, looking from face to face, drew a deep breath.
-
-"There is just one way," he said. "It was John Merriam who died.
-Senator Norman is alive." He waved his hand at Merriam. "He must go on
-living!"
-
-"But that is impossible," said Mayor Black and Merriam together.
-
-"Face the alternative first," said Rockwell. "George--the real
-George--was admitted to the hospital about nine o'clock this morning.
-At that same hour Senator Norman was making a speech at Cairo before an
-audience representing the entire county. That is known all over the
-State. He took the next train back to Chicago. But that train did not
-reach Chicago until after--after the death."
-
-"We could have the hour of the death changed on the records," proposed
-Mr. Wayward. "It is already announced all over the State that Senator
-Norman is ill again. He could be rushed from the train to the hospital
-and die there during the night."
-
-"Then we should have two deaths on our hands," said Rockwell, "and only
-one body. Unless we bring Merriam to life again. How are we to do
-that? It is pretty hard to get hospital authorities to falsify their
-records. And dozens of people must know the supposed facts--nurses,
-doctors, clerks at the hospital. We could never keep them all from
-talking. The reporters would get hold of it within twenty-four hours.
-No, Senator Norman cannot have died at the hospital. He is alive. He
-must go on living!"
-
-"Can't he die at the hotel--to-night or to-morrow?" said Merriam.
-
-"Then what becomes of you?" asked Rockwell.
-
-"Why, I should go back to Riceville."
-
-"You can't. You're dead! And how can Senator Norman die at the hotel
-when we should not be able to produce his body there?"
-
-"We could get the body," said Mr. Wayward, speaking in a lowered tone.
-"As Mr. Merriam's friends we would take his body away from the hospital
-to be buried and bring it to the hotel."
-
-"We shall have to send for the real Merriam's friends," said Rockwell.
-"From Riceville and--wherever your people live." He looked at Merriam.
-"We should have no body to show them. We could bury a loaded casket.
-But why should we, who must be strangers to him from their point of
-view, have been in such a hurry when they could get here in a few hours?
-Probably they would want to take his body elsewhere for burial. Very
-likely they would have the coffin we had buried raised and opened. And
-how could we get a dead body into the Hotel De Soto? Up a fire escape?"
-
-In the earnestness of his argument Rockwell evidently did not realise
-the gruesomeness of his language.
-
-Aunt Mary shuddered.
-
-"No!" she said. "I will not have George's body smuggled about the
-city."
-
-She paused, looking strangely at Merriam. None of the others, not even
-Rockwell, ventured to speak.
-
-"Alicia told me, I believe, that you have no near relatives?" she said
-presently.
-
-"None nearer than cousins," Merriam replied.
-
-For a long minute more Aunt Mary stared at him. She closed her eyes,
-opened them, and looked again. Then her lips shut tight for a moment in
-an expression of momentous decision. She leaned forward.
-
-"You have the Norman blood in you," she said to Merriam, "on your
-mother's side. You are fine stuff. We have all seen that. We will
-make a Norman of you, if you will. You shall take George's place--to
-save his name!"
-
-"But----" Merriam began.
-
-But Rockwell cut in:
-
-"It's absolutely the only way," he cried. "The only other alternative
-is to let the whole story come out."
-
-"Then that's what we have to do," said Mr. Wayward. "Make a clean breast
-of it."
-
-"No!" said Aunt Mary.
-
-"No!" echoed Rockwell. "Think what that means--to George's memory,
-first of all. That in his last hours his relatives and friends were
-conspiring against him, with the help of a stranger double, to force him
-to abandon the kind of life he was leading and the disreputable
-interests with which he was associated.--I beg your pardon, Mr.
-Crockett!"
-
-Crockett waved a feeble hand to indicate forgiveness or indifference.
-
-"And then to Mollie June," Rockwell continued. "That she had connived at
-the impersonation of her husband during his last illness by another man.
-How far did that other man take her husband's place, will be the
-question every man and woman in the State will ask. And all the rest of
-us. Aunt Mary. And Mr. Merriam, who will lose his job and his
-professional standing. And the Mayor and myself, who will be ruined
-politically and every other way. Even you, Mr. Wayward, would find
-yourself in an exceedingly unpleasant situation. And Mr. Crockett, on
-the other side, would be no better off. For the story of the kidnapping
-must come out."
-
-The wilted financier uttered a sort of groan.
-
-"But can the other thing be done?" asked the Mayor, the perspiration of
-mental anguish showing on his forehead.
-
-"Certainly it can," said, Rockwell eagerly. "Senator Norman has come
-back to Chicago. Here he is. Presently he will arrive at the hotel. He
-will be pretty sick. You and I"--he looked at Mr. Wayward--"will
-support him to the elevator and to his rooms. He will be ill for
-several days. We must get hold of Hobart again to attend him. Then we
-will announce that he is threatened with tuberculosis and is to retire
-from public life. He must resign his seat in the Senate. We daren't go
-ahead with that. It would be too dangerous--and too serious a fraud
-besides." (Evidently there was some limit to a Reformer's
-unscrupulousness.) "He will go to his ranch in Colorado to recuperate.
-You will actually go." He was addressing Merriam now. "You must live
-there for a year or so. During that time only a few of Norman's private
-friends will visit you. We will coach you up on these a few at a time.
-If any of them notice any slight changes in you, they will lay it to
-your illness. You will easily take your place in the whole circle of
-his private life."
-
-"But the property," said Mr. Wayward. "The Norman fortune."
-
-"Reverts to me and Mollie June," said Aunt Mary, who was evidently heart
-and soul with Rockwell. "If we are satisfied----"
-
-She stopped. The mention of Mollie June had recalled a phase of the
-situation which Rockwell and the Mayor and even Mr. Wayward had
-apparently forgotten--so little are men accustomed to consider their
-women folk when the real game of business or politics is on. Merriam
-and Alicia had not forgotten it, but had not been able so far to get a
-word in. As for Aunt Mary I cannot say--she was so near to being a man
-herself.
-
-"Mollie June!" repeated Rockwell aghast.
-
-"Exactly," said Merriam, somewhat bitterly. Him, too, Rockwell had been
-treating pretty much as a lifeless pawn in the game.
-
-But Aunt Mary, when roused, was equal to anything.
-
-"We shall manage that," she said. "I will go to Colorado with Mr.
-Merriam. Mollie June can return to her father for a time. We can
-arrange a separation--or----"
-
-Even Aunt Mary hesitated. But Alicia took the cue.
-
-"Or they can be married--or remarried," she said, fixing her bright
-eyes, with a gleam of mischievous understanding in them, on Merriam.
-
-The argument had come to a full stop. The whole roomful sat looking at
-Merriam, who tried to think and found he could not, except that he
-realised that all the rest had tacitly accepted Rockwell's plan.
-
-"Come!" said Alicia vivaciously. "It isn't so bad, is it? The Norman
-fortune and--Mollie June!"
-
-Bad! The prospect was so dazzling to Merriam that he could not take his
-mind off it in order to think calmly. To die to his old self--to his
-poverty and loneliness, to his teaching with which he had long been
-bored,--and to step as if by magic into a new life with wealth,
-leisure--and Mollie June! For surely she loved him, and she had not
-loved George Norman. She would marry him--after an interval, of course.
-
-"I must think," he said, weakly, in response to Alicia's exhortation.
-
-"Of course you must," said Rockwell. "You must accustom your mind to
-it. But it will all be perfectly easy. You were brought up on a farm,
-weren't you? You will take to the ranch life like anything. It's
-mostly stock-raising. You can go in for scientific farming. After a
-few months it would probably be a good thing for you to travel, perhaps
-for a year or two--especially if you and Mollie June should marry. Get
-out of the country, so as to leave Norman's old life entirely behind you
-for a while. You might take a trip around the world."
-
-Merriam's youthful heart bounded in spite of himself. A trip around the
-world with Mollie June!
-
-"As to your old self," Rockwell continued, "that's quite simple, too.
-Norman was entered at the hospital under your name. A death certificate
-must have been given by now." He looked at Crockett.
-
-"I don't know," said Crockett. "Hobart may have held off on that."
-
-"At any rate it can be. In fact, it will have to be. Hobart shall
-telegraph to Riceville and to your cousins, wherever they are. He was
-the house physician at the De Soto where you took sick. That was how he
-came to be attending you. When you got bad he took you to the hospital.
-Nothing more natural. The rest of us will not need to appear at all."
-
-"Aunt Mary will have to appear," said Alicia. "She will want to attend
-the funeral."
-
-"She became acquainted with you at the hotel, then," said Rockwell.
-"Took an interest in a young man who was alone and ill. When your
-relatives and friends come Hobart will have the body already laid out in
-a casket. He can advise immediate burial here in the city. Aunt Mary
-can offer a lot in the Norman plot at Lakewood. Would your cousins
-probably consent to that?"
-
-"Very likely," said Merriam, rather in a daze. It was confusing to be
-discussing the details of one's own interment.
-
-"Then everything will follow in regular course," said Rockwell, speaking
-as if all difficulties were solved. "George will be buried with his
-family, and you can start for Colorado."
-
-For a second time the talk came to a full stop. The new plan was
-outlined in full. It remained only to decide upon it or to reject it
-and face the alternative of a public confession. All of them except
-Merriam had already accepted the scheme, apparently, gruesome and
-bizarre as it was. It was for all the rest so much the easiest way and
-the most advantageous. But it did not require any of them to die--to
-die to his own self, his friends, his very name. On the other hand it
-did not offer them any such positive rewards as were proffered to
-Merriam--a fortune and love. We can hardly wonder that he was somewhat
-stupefied by the alternatives that beat upon his mind. The loss of all
-that up to this point in his life had been his identity versus Mollie
-June--that was the essence of the struggle within him.
-
-He sat beside Rockwell's table, staring at the now silent percolator,
-trying to think but able only to feel. The others were looking uneasily
-at him and at one another. Aunt Mary's eyes and Alicia's demanded of
-Rockwell, who had always managed everything, that he should manage this
-too. Once he started to speak, but gave it up and looked appealingly at
-Alicia instead. Indeed he might justifiably feel that this was Alicia's
-job. She acknowledged as much in her own mind and was trying to decide
-what to do or say, when the one person present who had not spoken
-throughout the entire scene came to the rescue.
-
-Through all their long discussion Simpson had stood unobtrusive and
-unnoticed in the background, but he had followed every word. For his
-fortunes too, humble, indeed, but sufficiently important to him, were
-bound up in this decision. If the deception was to be continued, his
-assistance, in the matter of silence at least, would be necessary, and
-he could expect a large--honorarium; if it came to a public confession,
-he could still expect something, but probably a good deal less; and to
-win and hold Jennie he needed a considerable sum of money.
-
-So now he advanced a step and spoke:
-
-"Shall I call a taxi for you, Mr. Merriam, to take you to the hotel?"
-
-"Of course!" cried Alicia, jumping up. "You must go and see Mollie
-June. It all depends now upon her."
-
-The others too stirred and expressed more or less audible acquiescence,
-and Simpson had his reward in the shape of approving glances from
-Rockwell and Mr. Wayward.
-
-Merriam got to his feet with the other men because Alicia had risen. He
-was not so obtuse nor so much dazed that he did not see what they were
-doing. They were trying to rush him. They calculated that though
-Mollie June in the abstract might contend indecisively with other
-abstract considerations, Mollie June in the flesh would decide him in
-the twinkling of an eye. He saw that plainly enough. Nevertheless, for
-his part it did now depend altogether upon Mollie June. If he was to do
-this thing--to abandon his old self and enter upon what must be in some
-degree a lifelong career of deception,--it would be for her sake--not
-only in order to win her sooner, years sooner, than he could otherwise
-have the slightest hope of doing, but to save her from scandal, and
-because she loved him and wanted him too at once (comparatively
-speaking) as he wanted her.
-
-So his decision was made almost as soon as he was on his feet. He
-looked with some dignity from one waiting face to another about the
-circle.
-
-"Yes," he said quietly, "it does depend on her. You may call a taxi,
-Simpson."
-
-
-
-
- *CHAPTER XXX*
-
- *MOLLIE JUNE*
-
-
-Almost before Merriam's brief sentence was out of his mouth Simpson had
-started for the telephone. But Mayor Black spoke up:
-
-"My car and chauffeur are below. We came up from the hotel in it. You
-can use it."
-
-"You go with him, Aunt Mary," said Rockwell, again taking command. "You
-see her first," he continued. "Mr. Merriam can wait somewhere--in 'Mr.
-Wilson's' room. When you have explained the general situation you can
-call him in and leave them together and--give him his chance."
-
-Even at this moment it was a slight shock to Merriam to realise that the
-state of feeling between himself and Mollie June, which they had
-supposed completely hidden, had been clearly perceived by the others--or
-at least, he thought swiftly, by Rockwell and Aunt Mary and Alicia. He
-smiled a little cynically to himself as he understood that they had been
-willing to use this interest of his as a motive in securing his easy
-acquiescence in their previous schemes. Evidently they were counting on
-it in Mollie June too. That gave him a thrill of hope which made him
-forget his cynicism.
-
-Father Murray had put Aunt Mary's wrap about her, and Rockwell had got
-Merriam's hat and his own.
-
-Merriam found Alicia by his side. She held out her hand, and when he
-took it she squeezed his fingers in the way she had and said
-significantly, with all of a woman's interest in a romance:
-
-"Good luck!"
-
-"Thank you," said Merriam, but his answering smile was again a little
-cynical.
-
-Then he opened the door for Aunt Mary and waved his hand to the others,
-with some amusement at the anxious looks with which they were regarding
-him. Even Simpson's countenance was perturbed!
-
-Rockwell and the Mayor went down to the street with them and put them in
-the limousine. The Mayor directed the chauffeur to drive them to the
-hotel and then to return for himself and the others. Rockwell spoke to
-Aunt Mary:
-
-"You put the essential facts before her and then leave them--leave Mr.
-Merriam to do the rest!"
-
-And again Merriam smiled with an acid amusement that is commonly
-supposed to belong to the middle-aged and old but is really most
-characteristic of those who are under thirty.
-
-Rockwell glanced at Merriam as if about to give him too a parting
-exhortation, but hesitated, checked perhaps by the younger man's
-expression, and spoke to the driver instead: "All right!"
-
-They had started, and Merriam tried to think. His whole life turned in a
-very peculiar sense on the events of the next hour--whether he should
-continue to be himself or take up the life of another man. He got that
-far. But what he should say to Mollie June--even what it was he wanted
-to say to her--he could not get on with it. The mood of youthful
-cynicism was by no means the right mood for the business in hand.
-
-And then--too soon for him now--they were at the hotel.
-
-So little had he been able to think clearly that it was not until he was
-helping Aunt Mary out of the machine that he realised that in entering
-the hotel with her again this way, in the character of the dead Senator,
-he was already in effect consenting to Rockwell's plan and binding its
-consequences upon himself and Mollie June.
-
-He had a wild idea of getting back into the limousine and driving away
-and later entering the hotel via the fire escape again. But Aunt Mary
-was already on the pavement.
-
-As they entered the lobby Merriam glanced about to see whether he was
-noticed and recognised as the Senator. He was. At least three men whom
-he did not know bowed and raised their hats, and one of them took a step
-forward as if to approach them. But Merriam looked away and guided Aunt
-Mary as rapidly as possible to the elevators.
-
-When they emerged on Floor Three, Merriam asked for the key, explaining
-casually that "Mr. Wilson" was a friend.
-
-In a couple of minutes he had escorted Aunt Mary to the door of her
-sitting room--Senator Norman's no longer--or was it still to be Senator
-Norman's?--and had himself entered "Mr. Wilson's" room.
-
-His first act there was to call up the hotel florist--as he had done
-once before on this same telephone. But this time Merriam's order was
-for roses, to be sent up at once.
-
-He hung up the receiver and walked nervously about the room.
-
-Was it not time for him to go to Mollie June? Aunt Mary was being
-terribly long about her explanation. Had Mollie June broken down under
-her grief--grief for George Norman?--or merely from anxiety and
-conflicting emotions? Was she refusing to see him? Was she ill?
-
-He jumped up and walked back and forth in his nervousness, watching the
-door to the other bedroom, at which he might expect to receive Aunt
-Mary's summons.
-
-A knock at last! But it was at the wrong door, the hall door. In a
-sort of hesitating amazement he went to answer it. It was the boy with
-the roses. He had forgotten ordering them.
-
-He signed for the flowers and brought them into the room and took them
-out of their box and tissue paper. They were lovely--the most exquisite
-colour, between pink and red, that has no name but that of the flower
-itself--pink and red harmonised in soft coolness and fragrance--Mollie
-June's flowers without a doubt.
-
-But had he done well in ordering them? Was this a time for lover-like
-gifts? Should he not have got white roses, such as one sends to a
-funeral?
-
-And then, as he stood in this anxiety, came Aunt Mary's knock at the
-bedroom door.
-
-He started as if caught in a guilty action and thrust the flowers back
-into their box before he went to open to her.
-
-"How is she?"
-
-But Aunt Mary herself looked so broken that he led her to a chair.
-
-Then, "How is she?" he repeated. He could not wait.
-
-"She is very quiet."
-
-"You told her the--the plan?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"She understood it?"
-
-"I think so."
-
-"Am I to go to her?"
-
-"I suppose so," said Aunt Mary with a sigh. "Mr. Rockwell said----" She
-stopped.
-
-Merriam showed her the roses.
-
-"Should I take these to her?"
-
-Aunt Mary looked at him and at the flowers.
-
-"I think perhaps you might," she said, and then sat staring out across
-the fire escape.
-
-She looked so very miserable that Merriam impulsively patted her
-shoulder. She glanced up quickly at that, then turned her eyes to the
-window again. He could not read her look, but he was not sorry he had
-betrayed his affectionate sympathy. If he was to be her brother for the
-rest of their lives----
-
-After a moment more of hesitation he picked up the flowers and passed
-through the former sick room to the sitting room.
-
-Mollie June was sitting in a small straight-backed chair by the window,
-looking out. But Merriam was sure at the first glance that she saw
-nothing. She had merely turned automatically towards the light, as all
-but the old or the self-conscious tend to do. As Aunt Mary had said she
-was very quiet. Her back was of course towards the room and Merriam.
-
-He waited for a moment just inside the door, looking at her, forgetting
-the flowers in his hands. He was sorry for her and very uncertain what
-he ought to do. Then he became a little frightened, because she sat so
-still. She gave no sign of having heard him.
-
-With conscious effort, because he must do something, he crossed the room
-till he stood beside her. Still she did not turn her eyes from the
-window.
-
-He stood looking down at her. She was a pathetic figure as she sat
-there--the more pathetic, to the eyes of youth at least, because she was
-so lovely, so young and fresh really, although a little pale and
-heavy-eyed. He saw dark shadows under her eyes which must have come
-from tears.
-
-The sight of these unlocked him, drowned all his hesitations in pitying
-love. He dropped on his knees beside her chair, laying the long-stemmed
-roses regardlessly on the floor and putting one hand on the back of her
-chair.
-
-"Mollie June!" he said.
-
-She did not start. Evidently she had known he was there. She looked
-first at the flowers on the floor and then at his face.
-
-"I am so sorry," he cried.
-
-"Are you sorry or glad?" she asked.
-
-"I am terribly sorry for you," he answered. Her hands lay together in
-her lap, and he attempted to take one of them.
-
-But she moved them slightly.
-
-"Don't," she said.
-
-"Don't make me strange to you, Mollie June," he cried.
-
-"How can I help it?" she answered. "I am strange to myself too. You
-see, I am glad! I am sorry for George," she went on quickly. "It is
-terrible to me that he is dead. But I am so glad I do not have to be
-his wife any more!"
-
-Once more, as on a former occasion, some dim notion came to Merriam of
-what it must mean to a girl to be connubially in the power of a man she
-does not love. He pitied and loved her greatly. Also he marvelled. How
-had she come through it all so fresh and unchanged? The answer, of
-course, was youth. But youth could not know the answer.
-
-"I am glad too," he said.
-
-Her eyes, which as she dropped them had rested on the roses on the
-floor, came back to his face.
-
-"You are glad I have to marry you."
-
-"But you don't!"
-
-"You know I do."
-
-Instantly he saw that Aunt Mary had not put the thing fairly before her.
-In Aunt Mary's mind it was settled. The course of action which promised
-to save the precious Norman name from scandal was the only possible
-course of action. She had so represented it to Mollie June.
-
-"No, no!" Merriam cried. "You shall not be forced into this. You shall
-never be forced in anything again if I can help it. I will not be
-forced myself--even to marry you."
-
-"What else can we do?" asked Mollie June, searching his face.
-
-"It's fairly simple," he said, a little bitterly. "Not easy, but simple.
-I will write a brief, plain account of the whole affair--the
-impersonation--from beginning to end, and send for a reporter and give
-it to him. That will end everything. I will sit down now at that desk
-and write it and call for a man and give it to him while Aunt Mary
-thinks we are still talking--unless you tell me not to."
-
-"Would you do that?"
-
-"Indeed I will!"
-
-He rose to his feet. He meant it, and she saw that he meant it. To be
-forced in this thing was, in fact, even less to his liking perhaps than
-to hers.
-
-Standing, he saw the roses at his feet. He stooped and picked them up
-and handed them to her.
-
-"You'll let me give you these?" he said, his manner more determined than
-lover-like. "I saw them from the elevator as I was coming up here with
-Aunt Mary. They were so like you that I could not help buying them and
-bringing them to you."
-
-She accepted them passively, looking up at him. Perhaps she liked him
-determined rather than lover-like.
-
-"I am not giving you up," he went on gravely. "But you will go away
-somewhere with Aunt Mary, and I will go back to Riceville. I have my
-contract for the rest of this year at least. And if you will wait a few
-years--you will want to wait and rest a while,--I will come back and win
-you in my own right."
-
-She did not answer but looked up at him, still searching his face.
-
-For a moment he stood regarding her. That image of her as she sat there
-with the flowers in her lap and her uplifted face and questioning eyes,
-more lovely than ever in their intense gravity in spite of their trace
-of tears, remained one of the permanent treasures of his memory.
-
-He turned away and walked over to the writing table and sat down. It
-was a moment or two before he could think why he was there. Then he
-remembered and drew towards him several sheets of the hotel stationery
-and took up a pen. He realised that he was in a very poor frame of mind
-for literary composition, but he mastered his attention and wrote:
-
- _Statement by John Merriam regarding His
- Impersonation of Senator Norman_
-
-
-He underlined those words and resisted an impulse to turn and look at
-Mollie June. He wanted to know whether she was looking at him or
-looking out at the window again. He wanted, too, merely to see her.
-But he would not look. With a heroic effort he brought his mind back to
-the paper before him. How to begin? Where to begin? It was a long
-story, he realised. He must make it as brief as possible. He could
-omit much. But he must introduce himself. The public did not know him
-from Adam. He seized at this straw.
-
-"My name is John Merriam," he wrote. "I am the principal of the high
-school at Riceville, Illinois. On my mother's side I am related to----"
-
-He stopped abruptly. It was the fragrance of roses that interrupted
-him. Mollie June had risen and come over beside him. His effort of
-concentration had been so great that he had not heard her. She carried
-the flowers pressed against the bosom of her dress. The action was
-probably mechanical; she was too much engrossed to think to put them
-down. She did not look at him but over his shoulder at his writing.
-She read it.
-
-Apparently his opening statement caught her attention. She looked at
-him and smiled slightly, more with her mouth than her eyes, which were
-still grave.
-
-"You wouldn't like to change your name, would you?" she said.
-
-"Mollie June!" He was on his feet.
-
-She backed away from him, pressing her flowers tight.
-
-"Would you?" she demanded.
-
-"It's not that," he said, not daring to advance towards her lest she
-should retreat farther.
-
-"A woman always has to change her name when she marries. Why shouldn't
-a man do it for once?"
-
-He started forward now and caught her arm and led her back to her chair
-and dropped on his knees again beside her.
-
-"Dearest Mollie June," he said, "I'll change my name to yours so gladly,
-if you will let me. So as to have you sooner than I could the other
-way. But not unless you want me to!" he added fiercely. "For yourself!"
-
-She looked at him, shyly now.
-
-"I would rather have it the other way myself," she said, tears standing
-in her eyes at last, "and wait and change my name to yours. But I think
-we ought to do it this way for George."
-
-"For George!"
-
-"Yes, and Aunt Mary. She has been very good to me. George was good to
-me too in his way. And he was my husband, and he's dead. If we can save
-his name and save her--this way,--don't you think we ought to?"
-
-Then of course he put his arms about her.
-
-"I won't call you George, though!" she said presently, very
-emphatically.
-
-"What will you call me, dearest?"
-
-She smiled at him through her tears and with a gesture that ravished him
-lifted his hand and kissed it.
-
-"Mr. John!" she whispered.
-
-He would have kissed her again, but she hurried on.
-
-"We'll pretend to people that it's a nickname left over from some game
-or play."
-
-"It _is_ left over from a sort of--play," he answered, and then she was
-ready for another kiss.
-
-
-
- THE END
-
-
-
-
-
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MOLLIE'S SUBSTITUTE HUSBAND ***
-
-
-
-
-A Word from Project Gutenberg
-
-
-We will update this book if we find any errors.
-
-This book can be found under: http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/48626
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, so
-the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright royalties.
-Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this
-license, apply to copying and distributing Project Gutenberg(tm)
-electronic works to protect the Project Gutenberg(tm) concept and
-trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be
-used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific
-permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this eBook,
-complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly
-any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances
-and research. They may be modified and printed and given away - you may
-do practically _anything_ in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-
-
-The Full Project Gutenberg License
-
-
-_Please read this before you distribute or use this work._
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg(tm) mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or
-any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg(tm) License available with this file or online at
-http://www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use & Redistributing Project Gutenberg(tm)
-electronic works
-
-
-*1.A.* By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg(tm)
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the
-terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all
-copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works in your possession. If
-you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-*1.B.* "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things
-that you can do with most Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works even
-without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph
-1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-*1.C.* The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of
-Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works. Nearly all the individual works
-in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the United States and
-you are located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent
-you from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating
-derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project
-Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the
-Project Gutenberg(tm) mission of promoting free access to electronic
-works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg(tm) works in compliance with
-the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg(tm) name
-associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this
-agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full
-Project Gutenberg(tm) License when you share it without charge with
-others.
-
-
-*1.D.* The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg(tm) work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-*1.E.* Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-*1.E.1.* The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg(tm) License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg(tm) work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United
- States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with
- almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away
- or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License
- included with this eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org .
- If you are not located in the United States, you'll have to
- check the laws of the country where you are located before using
- this ebook.
-
-*1.E.2.* If an individual Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not contain
-a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the copyright
-holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in the United
-States without paying any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or
-providing access to a work with the phrase "Project Gutenberg"
-associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply either with
-the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission
-for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark as set
-forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-*1.E.3.* If an individual Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic work is
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and
-distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and
-any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg(tm) License for all works posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of
-this work.
-
-*1.E.4.* Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project
-Gutenberg(tm) License terms from this work, or any files containing a
-part of this work or any other work associated with Project
-Gutenberg(tm).
-
-*1.E.5.* Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg(tm) License.
-
-*1.E.6.* You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg(tm) work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg(tm) web site
-(http://www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or
-expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a
-means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include
-the full Project Gutenberg(tm) License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-*1.E.7.* Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg(tm) works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-*1.E.8.* You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works
-provided that
-
- - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg(tm) works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
- - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg(tm)
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg(tm)
- works.
-
- - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
- - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg(tm) works.
-
-
-*1.E.9.* If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg(tm)
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3. below.
-
-*1.F.*
-
-*1.F.1.* Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg(tm) collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg(tm)
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by your
-equipment.
-
-*1.F.2.* LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg(tm) trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees.
-YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY,
-BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN
-PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND
-ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR
-ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES
-EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.
-
-*1.F.3.* LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-*1.F.4.* Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS,' WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-*1.F.5.* Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-*1.F.6.* INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg(tm)
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg(tm) work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg(tm)
-
-
-Project Gutenberg(tm) is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg(tm)'s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg(tm) collection will remain
-freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and
-permanent future for Project Gutenberg(tm) and future generations. To
-learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and
-how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the
-Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org .
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state
-of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue
-Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification number is
-64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf . Contributions to the
-Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the
-full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its volunteers
-and employees are scattered throughout numerous locations. Its business
-office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116,
-(801) 596-1887, email business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at http://www.pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-
-Project Gutenberg(tm) depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where
-we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any
-statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside
-the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways
-including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate,
-please visit: http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic
-works.
-
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg(tm)
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg(tm) eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg(tm) eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's eBook
-number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII,
-compressed (zipped), HTML and others.
-
-Corrected _editions_ of our eBooks replace the old file and take over
-the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed.
-_Versions_ based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving
-new filenames and etext numbers.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg(tm),
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.